|
Dreams, Waking Thoughts, and Incidents; in a Series of
Letters from Various Parts of Europe
LETTER I
LETTER II
LETTER III
LETTER IV
LETTER V
LETTER VI
LETTER VII
LETTER VIII
LETTER IX
LETTER X
LETTER XI
LETTER XII
LETTER XIII
LETTER XIV
LETTER XV
LETTER XVI
LETTER XVII
LETTER XVIII
LETTER XIX
LETTER XX
LETTER XXI
LETTER XXII
LETTER XXIII
LETTER XXIV
LETTER XXV
LETTER XXVI
ADDITIONAL LETTERS
LETTER I
LETTER II
LETTER III
LETTER IV
LETTER V
LETTER VI
LETTER VII
AN EXCURSION TO THE GRAND CHARTREUSE IN THE YEAR
1778
Transcribed from the 1891 Ward, Lock and Co. edition by David Price,
email ccx074@coventry.ac.uk
June 19th, 1780.—Shall I tell you my dreams?—To
give an account of my time is doing, I assure you, but little better.
Never did there exist a more ideal being. A frequent mist hovers
before my eyes, and, through its medium, I see objects so faint and
hazy, that both their colours and forms are apt to delude me. This is
a rare confession, say the wise, for a traveller to make: pretty
accounts will such a one give of outlandish countries: his
correspondents must reap great benefit, no doubt, from such purblind
observations. But stop, my good friends; patience a moment!—I really
have not the vanity of pretending to make a single remark, during the
whole of my journey: if—be contented with my visionary way of gazing,
I am perfectly pleased; and shall write away as freely as Mr. A., Mr.
B., Mr. C., and a million others whose letters are the admiration of
the politest circles.
All through Kent did I doze as usual; now and then I opened my eyes
to take in an idea or two of the green, woody country through which I
was passing; then closed them again; transported myself back to my
native hills; thought I led a choir of those I loved best through their
shades; and was happy in the arms of illusion. The sun set before I
recovered my senses enough to discover plainly the variegated slopes
near Canterbury, waving with slender birch-trees, and gilt with a
profusion of broom. I thought myself still in my beloved solitude, but
missed the companions of my slumbers. Where are they?—Behind yon
blue hills, perhaps, or t'other side of that thick forest. My fancy
was travelling after these deserters, till we reached the town; vile
enough o' conscience, and fit only to be passed in one's sleep. The
moment after I got out of the carriage, brought me to the cathedral; an
old haunt of mine. I had always venerated its lofty pillars, dim
aisles, and mysterious arches. Last night they were more solemn than
ever, and echoed no other sound than my steps. I strayed about the
choir and chapels, till they grew so dark and dismal, that I was half
inclined to be frightened; looked over my shoulder; thought of spectres
that have an awkward trick of syllabling men's names in dreary places;
and fancied a sepulchral voice exclaiming: “Worship my toe at Ghent; my
ribs at Florence; my skull at Bologna, Sienna, and Rome. Beware how
you neglect this order; for my bones, as well as my spirit, have the
miraculous property of being here, there, and everywhere.” These
injunctions, you may suppose, were received in a becoming manner, and
noted all down in my pocket-book by inspiration (for I could not see),
and hurrying into the open air, I was whirled away in the dark to
Margate. Don't ask what were my dreams thither:—nothing but horrors,
deep-vaulted tombs, and pale, though lovely figures, extended upon
them; shrill blasts that sung in my ears, and filled me with sadness,
and the recollection of happy hours, fleeting away, perhaps for ever!
I was not sorry, when the bustle of our coming-in dispelled these
phantoms. The change, however, in point of scenery was not calculated
to dissipate my gloom; for the first object in this world that
presented itself, was a vast expanse of sea, just visible by the
gleamings of the moon, bathed in watery clouds; a chill air ruffled the
waves. I went to shiver a few melancholy moments on the shore. How
often did I try to wish away the reality of my separation from those I
love, and attempt to persuade myself it was but a dream!
This morning I found myself more cheerfully disposed, by the queer
Dutch faces with short pipes and ginger-bread complexions that came
smirking and scraping to get us on board their respective vessels; but,
as I had a ship engaged for me before, their invitations were all in
vain. The wind blows fair; and, should it continue of the same mind a
few hours longer, we shall have no cause to complain of our passage.
Adieu! Think of me sometimes. If you write immediately, I shall
receive your letter at the Hague.
It is a bright sunny evening: the sea reflects a thousand glowing
colours, and, in a minute or two, I shall be gliding on its surface.
OSTEND, June 21st.
T'other minute I was in Greece, gathering the bloom of Hymettus, but
now I am landed in Flanders, smoked with tobacco, and half poisoned
with garlic. Were I to remain ten days at Ostend, I should scarcely
have one delightful vision; 'tis so unclassic a place—nothing but
preposterous Flemish roofs disgust your eyes when you cast them
upwards; swaggering Dutchmen and mongrel barbers are the principal
objects they meet with below. I should esteem myself in luck, were the
nuisances of this seaport confined only to two senses; but, alas! the
apartment above my head proves a squalling brattery, and the sounds
which proceed from it are so loud and frequent, that a person might
think himself in limbo, without any extravagance.
Am I not an object of pity, when I tell you that I was tormented
yesterday by a similar cause? But I know not how it is; your violent
complainers are the least apt to excite compassion. I believe,
notwithstanding, if another rising generation should lodge above me at
the next inn, I shall grow as scurrilous as Dr. Smollett, and be
dignified with the appellation of the Younger Smelfungus. Well, let
those make out my diploma that will, I am determined to vent my spleen,
and like Lucifer, unable to enjoy comfort myself, tease others with the
details of my vexatious. You must know, then, since I am resolved to
grumble, that, tired with my passage, I went to the Capuchin church, a
large solemn building, in search of silence and solitude; but here
again was I disappointed. Half-a-dozen squeaking fiddles fugued and
flourished away in the galleries, and as many paralytic monks gabbled
before the altars, while a whole posse of devotees, in long white hoods
and flannels, were sweltering on either side.
Such piety, in warm weather, was no very fragrant circumstance; so I
sought the open air again as fast as I was able. The serenity of the
evening, joined to the desire I had of casting another glance over the
ocean, tempted me to the ramparts. There, at least, thought I to
myself, I may range undisturbed, and talk with my old friends the
breezes, and address my discourse to the waves, and be as romantic and
whimsical as I please; but it happened that I had scarcely begun my
apostrophe, before out flaunted a whole rank of officers, with ladies
and abbés and puppy dogs, singing, and flirting, and making such a
hubbub, that I had not one peaceful moment to observe the bright tints
of the western horizon, or enjoy the series of antique ideas with which
a calm sunset never fails to inspire me.
Finding, therefore, no quiet abroad, I returned to my inn, and should
have gone immediately to bed, in hopes of relapsing into the bosom of
dreams and delusions; but the limbo I mentioned before grew so very
outrageous, that I was obliged to postpone my rest till sugar-plums and
nursery eloquence had hushed it to repose. At length peace was
restored, and about eleven o'clock I fell into a slumber, during which
the most lovely Sicilian prospects filled the eye of my fancy. I
anticipated the classic scenes of that famous island, and forgot every
sorrow in the meadows of Enna.
Next morning, awakened by the sunbeams, I arose quite refreshed by
the agreeable impressions of my dream, and filled with presages of
future happiness in the climes which had inspired them. No other idea
but such as Trinacria and Naples suggested, haunted me whilst
travelling to Ghent. I neither heard the vile Flemish dialect which
was talking around me, nor noticed formal avenues and marshy country
which we passed. When we stopped to change horses, I closed my eyes
upon the whole scene, and was transported immediately to some Grecian
solitude, where Theocritus and his shepherds were filling the air with
melody. To one so far gone in poetic antiquity, Ghent is not the most
likely place to recall his attention; and I know nothing more about it,
than that it is a large, ill-paved, dismal-looking city, with a decent
proportion of convents and chapels, stuffed with monuments, brazen
gates, and glittering marbles. In the great church were two or three
pictures by Rubens, mechanically excellent, but these realities were
not designed in so graceful a manner as to divert my attention from the
mere descriptions Pausanias gives us of the works of Grecian artists,
and I would at any time fall asleep in a Flemish cathedral, for a
vision of the temple of Olympian Jupiter. But I think I hear, at this
moment, some grave and respectable personage chiding me for such
levities, and saying, “Really, Sir, you had better stay at home, and
dream in your great chair, than give yourself the trouble of going post
through Europe, in search of inspiring places to fall asleep. If
Flanders and Holland are to be dreamed over at this rate, you had
better take ship at once, and doze all the way to Italy.” Upon my
word, I should not have much objection to that scheme; and, if some
cabalist would but transport me in an instant to the summit of Ætna,
any body might slop through the Low Countries that pleased.
Being, however, so far advanced, there was no retracting; and as it
is now three or four years since I have almost abandoned the hopes of
discovering a necromancer, I resolved to journey along with Quiet and
Content for my companions. These two comfortable deities have, I
believe, taken Flanders under their especial protection; every step one
advances discovering some new proof of their influence. The neatness
of the houses, and the universal cleanliness of the villages, show
plainly that their inhabitants live in ease and good humour. All is
still and peaceful in these fertile lowlands: the eye meets nothing but
round, unmeaning faces at every door, and harmless stupidity smiling at
every window. The beasts, as placid as their masters, graze on without
any disturbance; and I scarcely recollect to have heard one grunting
swine or snarling mastiff during my whole progress. Before every
village is a wealthy dunghill, not at all offensive, because but seldom
disturbed; and there they bask in the sun, and wallow at their ease,
till the hour of death and bacon arrives, when capacious paunches await
them. If I may judge from the healthy looks and reposed complexions of
the Flemings, they have every reason to expect a peaceful tomb.
But it is high time to leave our swinish moralities behind us, and to
jog on towards Antwerp. More rich pastures, more ample fields of
grain, more flourishing willows!—a boundless plain before this city,
dotted with cows and flowers, from whence its spires and quaint roofs
are seen to advantage. The pale colours of the sky, and a few gleams
of watery sunshine, gave a true Flemish cast to the scenery, and
everything appeared so consistent, that I had not a shadow of pretence
to think myself asleep.
After crossing a broad, noble river, edged on one side by beds of
osiers beautifully green, and on the other by gates and turrets
preposterously ugly, we came through several streets of lofty houses to
our inn. Its situation in the “Place de Mer,” a vast open space
surrounded by buildings above buildings, and roof above roof, has
something striking and singular. A tall gilt crucifix of bronze,
sculptured by some famous artist, adds to its splendour; and the tops
of some tufted trees, seen above a line of magnificent hotels, have no
bad effect in the perspective.
It was almost dusk when we arrived; and as I am very partial to new
objects discovered by this dubious visionary light, I went immediately
a-rambling. Not a sound disturbed my meditations; there were no groups
of squabbling children or talkative old women. The whole town seemed
retired into their inmost chambers; and I kept winding and turning
about, from street to street, and from alley to alley, without meeting
a single inhabitant. Now and then, indeed, one or two women in long
cloaks and mantles glided about at a distance; but their dress was so
shroud-like, and their whole appearance so ghostly, that I was more
than half afraid to accost them. As the night approached, the ranges
of buildings grew more and more dim, and the silence which reigned
amongst them more awful. The canals, which in some places intersect
the streets, were likewise in perfect solitude, and there was just
light sufficient for me to observe on the still waters the reflection
of the structures above them. Except two or three tapers glimmering
through the casements, no one circumstance indicated human existence.
I might, without being thought very romantic, have imagined myself in
the city of petrified people, which Arabian fabulists are so fond of
describing. Were any one to ask my advice upon the subject of
retirement, I should tell him,—By all means repair to Antwerp. No
village amongst the Alps, or hermitage upon Mount Lebanon, is less
disturbed: you may pass your days in this great city without being the
least conscious of its sixty thousand inhabitants, unless you visit the
churches. There, indeed, are to be heard a few devout whispers, and
sometimes, to be sure, the bells make a little chiming; but walk about,
as I do, in the twilights of midsummer, and be assured your ears will
be free from all molestation.
You can have no idea how many strange, amusing fancies played around
me whilst I wandered along; nor how delighted I was with the novelty of
my situation. But a few days ago, thought I within myself, I was in
the midst of all the tumult and uproar of London: now, as if by some
magic influence, I am transported to a city equally remarkable for
streets and edifices, but whose inhabitants seem cast into a profound
repose. What a pity that we cannot borrow some small share of this
soporific disposition! It would temper that restless spirit which
throws us sometimes into such dreadful convulsions. However, let us
not be too precipitate in desiring so dead a calm; the time may arrive
when, like Antwerp, we may sink into the arms of forgetfulness; when a
fine verdure may carpet our Exchange, and passengers traverse the
Strand, without any danger of being smothered in crowds, or lost in the
confusion of carriages.
Reflecting, in this manner, upon the silence of the place, contrasted
with the important bustle which formerly rendered it so famous, I
insensibly drew near to the cathedral, and found myself, before I was
aware, under its stupendous tower. It is difficult to conceive an
object more solemn or imposing than this edifice at the hour I first
beheld it. Dark shades hindered my examining the lower galleries or
windows; their elaborate carved work was invisible; nothing but huge
masses of building met my sight, and the tower, shooting up four
hundred and sixty-six feet into the air, received an additional
importance from the gloom which prevailed below. The sky being
perfectly clear, several stars twinkled through the mosaic of the
spire, and added not a little to its enchanted effect. I longed to
ascend it that instant, to stretch myself out upon its very summit, and
calculate from so sublime an elevation the influence of the planets.
Whilst I was indulging my astrological reveries, a ponderous bell
struck ten, and such a peal of chimes succeeded, as shook the whole
edifice, notwithstanding its bulk, and drove me away in a hurry. No
mob obstructed my passage, and I ran through a succession of streets,
free and unmolested, as if I had been skimming along over the downs of
Wiltshire. My servants conversing before the hotel were the only
sounds which the great “Place de Mer” echoed.
This universal stillness was the more pleasing, when I looked back
upon those scenes of horror and outcry which filled London but a week
or two ago, when danger was not confined to night only, and the
environs of the capital, but haunted our streets at midday. Here, I
could wander over an entire city; stray by the port, and venture
through the most obscure alleys, without a single apprehension; without
beholding a sky red and portentous with the light of fires, or hearing
the confused and terrifying murmurs of shouts and groans, mingled with
the reports of artillery. I can assure you, I think myself very
fortunate to have escaped the possibility of another such week of
desolation, and to be peaceably roosted at Antwerp. Were I not still
fatigued with my heavy progress through sands and quagmires, I should
descant a little longer upon the blessings of so quiet a metropolis,
but it is growing late, and I must retire to enjoy it.
ANTWERP, June 23rd.
My windows look full upon the Place de Mer, and the sun, beaming
through their white curtains, awoke me from a dream of Arabian
happiness. Imagination had procured herself a tent on the mountains of
Sanaa, covered with coffee-trees in bloom. She was presenting me the
essence of their flowers, and was just telling me that you possessed a
pavilion on a neighbouring hill, when the sunshine dispelled the
vision; and opening my eyes, I found myself pent in by Flemish spires
and buildings: no hills, no verdure, no aromatic breezes, no hope of
being in your vicinity: all were vanished with the shadows of fancy,
and I was left alone to deplore your absence. But I think it rather
selfish to wish you here, for what pleasure could pacing from one dull
church to another, afford a person of your turn? I don't believe you
would catch a taste for blubbering Magdalens and coarse Madonnas, by
lolling in Rubens' chair; nor do I believe a view of the Ostades and
Snyders, so liberally scattered in every collection, would greatly
improve your pencil.
After breakfast this morning I began my pilgrimage to all those
illustrious cabinets. First, I went to Monsieur Van Lencren's, who
possesses a suite of apartments, lined, from the base to the cornice,
with the rarest productions of the Flemish school. Heavens forbid I
should enter into a detail of their niceties! I might as well count
the dew-drops upon any of Van Huysem's flower-pieces, or the pimples on
their possessor's countenance; a very good sort of man, indeed; but
from whom I was not at all sorry to be delivered.
My joy was, however, of short duration, as a few minutes brought me
into the courtyard of the Chanoin Knyfe's habitation; a snug abode,
well furnished with easy chairs and orthodox couches. After viewing
the rooms on the first floor, we mounted a gentle staircase, and
entered an ante-chamber, which those who delight in the imitations of
art rather than of nature, in the likenesses of joint stools and the
portraits of tankards, would esteem most capitally adorned: but it must
be confessed, that, amongst these uninteresting performances, are
dispersed a few striking Berghems and agreeable Polemburgs. In the
gallery adjoining, two or three Rosa de Tivolis merit observation; and
a large Teniers, representing a St. Anthony surrounded by a malicious
fry of imps and leering devilesses, is well calculated to display the
whimsical buffoonery of a Dutch imagination.
I was observing this strange medley, when the Canon made his
appearance; and a most prepossessing figure he has, according to
Flemish ideas. In my humble opinion his Reverence looked a little
muddled or so; and, to be sure, the description I afterwards heard of
his style of living, favours not a little my surmises. This worthy
dignitary, what with his private fortune and the good things of the
church, enjoys a revenue of about five thousand pounds sterling, which
he contrives to get rid of in the joys of the table and the
encouragement of the pencil.
His servants, perhaps, assist not a little in the expenditure of so
comfortable an income; the Canon being upon a very social footing with
them all. At four o'clock in the afternoon, a select party attend him
in his coach to an alehouse about a league from the city; where a
table, well spread with jugs of beer and handsome cheeses, waits their
arrival. After enjoying this rural fare, the same equipage conducts
them back again, by all accounts, much faster than they came; which may
well be conceived, as the coachman is one of the brightest wits of the
entertainment.
My compliments, alas! were not much relished, you may suppose, by
this jovial personage. I said a few favourable words of Polemburg, and
offered up a small tribute of praise to the memory of Berghem; but, as
I could not prevail upon Mynheer Knyfe to expand, I made one of my best
bows, and left him to the enjoyment of his domestic felicity.
In my way home, I looked into another cabinet, the greatest ornament
of which was a most sublime thistle by Snyders, of the heroic size, and
so faithfully imitated that I dare say no ass could see it unmoved. At
length, it was lawful to return home; and as I positively refused
visiting any more cabinets in the afternoon, I sent for a harpsichord
of Rucker, and played myself quite out of the Netherlands.
It was late before I finished my musical excursion, and I took
advantage of this dusky moment to revisit the cathedral. A flight of
starlings was fluttering about one of the pinnacles of the tower; their
faint chirpings were the only sounds that broke the stillness of the
air. Not a human form appeared at any of the windows around; no
footsteps were audible in the opening before the grand entrance; and,
during the half hour I spent in walking to and fro beneath the spire,
one solitary Franciscan was the only creature that accosted me. From
him I learnt that a grand service was to be performed next day in
honour of St. John the Baptist, and the best music in Flanders would be
called forth on the occasion. As I had seen cabinets enough to form
some slight judgment of Flemish painting, I determined to stay one day
longer at Antwerp to hear a little how its inhabitants were disposed to
harmony.
Having taken this resolution, I formed an acquaintance with Mynheer
Vander Bosch, the first organist of the place, who very kindly
permitted me to sit next him in his gallery during the celebration of
high mass. The service ended, I strayed about the aisles, and examined
the innumerable chapels which decorate them, whilst Mynheer Vander
Bosch thundered and lightened away upon his huge organ with fifty
stops.
When the first flashes of execution were a little subsided, I took an
opportunity of surveying the celebrated “Descent from the Cross,” which
has ever been esteemed one of Rubens's chef d'uvres, and for which they
say old Lewis Baboon offered no less a sum than forty thousand
florins. The principal figure has, doubtless, a very meritorious
paleness, and looks as dead as an artist could desire; the rest of the
group have been so liberally praised, that there is no occasion to add
another tittle of commendation. A swinging St. Christopher, fording a
brook with a child on his shoulders, cannot fail of attracting your
attention. This colossal personage is painted on the folding-doors
which defend the capital performance just mentioned from vulgar eyes;
and here Rubens has selected a very proper subject to display the
gigantic coarseness of his pencil.
Had this powerful artist confined his strength to the representation
of agonizing thieves and sturdy Barabbases, nobody would have been
readier than your humble servant to offer incense at his shrine, but
when I find him lost in the flounces of the Virgin's drapery, or
bewildered in the graces of St. Catherine's smile, pardon me if I
withhold my adoration. After I had most dutifully observed all the
Rubenses in the church, I walked half over Antwerp in search of St.
John's relics, which were moving about in procession, but an heretical
wind having extinguished all their tapers, and discomposed the canopy
over the Bon Dieu, I cannot say much for the grandeur of the
spectacle. If my eyes were not greatly regaled by the Saint's
magnificence, my ears were greatly affected in the evening by the music
which sang forth his praises. The cathedral was crowded with devotees
and perfumed with incense. Several of its marble altars gleamed with
the reflection of lamps, and, altogether, the spectacle was new and
imposing. I knelt very piously in one of the aisles while a symphony
in the best style of Corelli, performed with taste and feeling,
transported me to Italian climates, and I was quite vexed, when a
cessation dissolved the charm, to think that I had still so many
tramontane regions to pass, before I could in effect reach that classic
country, where my spirit had so long taken up its abode. Finding it
was in vain to wish or expect any preternatural interposition, and
perceiving no conscious angel, or Loretto-vehicle, waiting in some dark
consecrated corner to bear me away, I humbly returned to my hotel in
the Place de Mer, and soothed myself with some terrestrial harmony;
till, my eyes growing heavy, I fell fast asleep, and entered the empire
of dreams, according to custom, by its ivory portal. What passed in
those shadowy realms is too thin and unsubstantial to be committed to
paper. The very breath of waking mortals would dissipate all the
train, and drive them eternally away; give me leave, therefore, to omit
the relation of my visionary travels, and have the patience to pursue a
sketch of my real ones from Antwerp to the Hague.
Monday, June 26th, we were again upon the pavé,
rattling and jumbling along between clipped hedges and blighted
avenues. The plagues of Egypt have been renewed, one might almost
imagine, in this country, by the appearance of the oak-trees: not a
leaf have the insects spared. After having had the displeasure of
seeing no other objects for several hours, but these blasted rows, the
scene changed to vast tracts of level country, buried in sand, and
smothered with heath; the particular character of which I had but too
good an opportunity of intimately knowing, as a tortoise might have
kept pace with us without being once out of breath.
Towards evening, we entered the dominions of the United Provinces,
and had all their glory of canals, track-shuyts, and windmills before
us. The minute neatness of the villages, their red roofs, and the
lively green of the willows which shade them, corresponded with the
ideas I had formed of Chinese prospects; a resemblance which was not
diminished upon viewing on every side the level scenery of enamelled
meadows, with stripes of clear water across them, and innumerable
barges gliding busily along. Nothing could be finer than the weather;
it improved each moment, as if propitious to my exotic fancies; and, at
sunset, not one single cloud obscured the horizon. Several storks were
parading by the water-side, amongst flags and osiers; and, as far as
the eye could reach, large herds of beautifully spotted cattle were
enjoying the plenty of their pastures. I was perfectly in the environs
of Canton, or Ning Po, till we reached Meerdyke. You know fumigations
are always the current recipe in romance to break an enchantment; as
soon, therefore, as I left my carriage, and entered my inn, the clouds
of tobacco which filled every one of its apartments dispersed my
Chinese imaginations, and reduced me in an instant to Holland.
Why should I enlarge upon my adventures at Meerdyke? To tell you
that its inhabitants are the most uncouth bipeds in the universe would
be nothing very new or entertaining; so let me at once pass over the
village, leave Rotterdam, and even Delft, that great parent of pottery,
and transport you with a wave of my pen to the Hague.
As the evening was rather warm, I immediately walked out to enjoy the
shade of the long avenue which leads to Scheveling. It was fresh and
pleasant enough, but I breathed none of those genuine woody perfumes,
which exhale from the depths of forests, and which allure my
imagination at once to the haunts of Pan and the good old Sylvanus.
However, I was far from displeased with my ramble; and, consoling
myself with the hopes of shortly reposing in the sylvan labyrinths of
Nemi, I proceeded to the village on the sea-coast, which terminates the
perspective. Almost every cottage door being open to catch the air, I
had an opportunity of looking into their neat apartments. Tables,
shelves, earthenware, all glisten with cleanliness; the country people
were drinking tea, after the fatigues of the day, and talking over its
bargains and contrivances.
I left them, to walk on the beach, and was so charmed with the vast
azure expanse of ocean, which opened suddenly upon me, that I remained
there a full half hour. More than two hundred vessels of different
sizes were in sight, the last sunbeams purpling their sails, and
casting a path of innumerable brilliants athwart the waves. What would
I not have given to follow this shining track! It might have conducted
me straight to those fortunate western climates, those happy isles
which you are so fond of painting, and I of dreaming about. But,
unluckily, this passage was the only one my neighbours the Dutch were
ignorant of. To be sure they have islands rich in spices, and blessed
with the sun's particular attention, but which their government, I am
apt to imagine, renders by no means fortunate.
Abandoning therefore all hopes at present of this adventurous voyage,
I returned towards the Hague, and, in my way home, looked into a
country-house of the late Count Bentinck, with parterres and bosquets
by no means resembling (one should conjecture) the gardens of the
Hesperides. But, considering that the whole group of trees, terraces,
and verdure were in a manner created out of hills of sand, the place
may claim some portion of merit. The walks and alleys have all the
stiffness and formality our ancestors admired; but the intermediate
spaces, being dotted with clumps and sprinkled with flowers, are
imagined in Holland to be in the English style. An Englishman ought
certainly to behold it with partial eyes, since every possible attempt
has been made to twist it into the taste of his country.
I need not say how liberally I bestowed my encomiums on Count B.'s
tasteful intentions; nor how happy I was, when I had duly serpentized
over his garden, to find myself once more in the grand avenue. All the
way home, I reflected upon the economical disposition of the Dutch, who
raise gardens from heaps of sand, and cities out of the bosom of the
waters. I had still a further proof of this thrifty turn, since the
first object I met was an unwieldy fellow (not able, or unwilling,
perhaps, to afford horses) airing his carcass in a one-dog chair. The
poor animal puffed and panted,—Mynheer smoked, and gaped around him
with the most blessed indifference.
June 30th.
I dedicated the morning to the Prince of Orange's cabinet of
paintings and curiosities both natural and artificial. Amongst the
pictures which amused me the most is a St. Anthony, by Hell-fire
Brughel, who has shown himself right worthy of the title; for a more
diabolical variety of imps never entered the human imagination.
Brughel has made his saint take refuge in a ditch filled with harpies
and creeping things innumerable, whose malice, one should think, would
have lost Job himself the reputation of patience. Castles of steel and
fiery turrets glare on every side, from whence issue a band of junior
devils. These seem highly entertained with pinking poor St. Anthony,
and whispering, I warrant ye, filthy tales in his ear. Nothing can be
more rueful than the patient's countenance; more forlorn than his
beard; more pious than his eye, which forms a strong contrast to the
pert winks and insidious glances of his persecutors; some of whom; I
need not mention, are evidently of the female kind.
But really I am quite ashamed of having detained you in such bad
company so long; and, had I a moment to spare, you should be introduced
to a better set in this gallery, where some of the most exquisite
Berghems and Wouvermans I ever beheld would delight you for hours. I
do not think you would look much at the Polemburgs; there are but two,
and one of them is very far from capital; in short I am in a great
hurry; so pardon me, Carlo Cignani! if I don't do justice to your
merit; and excuse me, Potter! if I pass by your herds without leaving a
tribute of admiration.
Mynheer Van Something is as eager to precipitate my motions as I was
to get out of the damps and perplexities of Soorflect yesterday
evening; so mounting a very indifferent staircase, he led me to a suite
of garret-like apartments; which, considering the meanness of their
exterior, I was much surprised to find stored with some of the most
valuable productions of the Indies. Gold cups enriched with gems,
models of Chinese palaces in ivory, glittering armour of Hindostan, and
Japan caskets, filled every corner of this awkward treasury. What of
all its baubles pleased me most was a large coffer of some precious
wood, containing enamelled flasks of oriental essences, enough to
perfume a zenana, and so fragrant that I thought the Mogul himself a
Dutchman, for lavishing them upon this inelegant nation. If
disagreeable fumes, as I mentioned before, dissolve enchantments, such
aromatic oils have doubtless the power of raising them; for, whilst I
scented their fragrance, scarcely could anything have persuaded me that
I was not in the wardrobe of Hecuba,—
“Where treasur'd odours breath'd a costly scent.”
I saw, or seemed to see, the arched apartments, the procession of
venerable matrons, the consecrated vestments: the very temple began to
rise upon my sight, when a Dutch porpoise approaching to make me a low
bow; his complaisance was full as notorious as Satan's, when, according
to Catholic legends, he took leave of Calvin or Dr. Faustus. No spell
can resist a fumigation of this nature; away fled palace, Hecuba,
matrons, temple, etc. I looked up, and lo! I was in a garret. As
poetry is but too often connected with this lofty situation, you won't
wonder much at my flight. Being a little recovered from it, I tottered
down the staircase, entered the cabinets of natural history, and was
soon restored to my sober senses. A grave hippopotamus contributed a
great deal to their reestablishment.
The butterflies, I must needs confess, were very near leading me
another dance: I thought of their native hills and beloved flowers, of
Haynang and Nan-Hoa;
{110} but the jargon which was prating all around me prevented the
excursion, and I summoned a decent share of attention for that ample
chamber which has been appropriated to bottled snakes and pickled
ftuses.
After having enjoyed the same spectacle in the British Museum, no
very new or singular objects can be selected in this. One of the
rarest articles it contains is the representation in wax of a human
head, most dexterously flayed indeed! Rapturous encomiums have been
bestowed by amateurs on this performance. A German professor could
hardly believe it artificial; and, prompted by the love of truth, set
his teeth in this delicious morsel to be convinced of its reality. My
faith was less hazardously established; and I moved off, under the
conviction that art had never produced anything more horridly natural.
It was one o'clock before I got through the mineral kingdom; and
another hour passed before I could quit with decorum the regions of
stuffed birds and marine productions. At length my departure was
allowable; and I went to dine at Sir Joseph Yorke's, with all nations
and languages. The Hague is the place in the world for a motley
assembly, and, in some humours, I think such the most agreeable.
After coffee I strayed to the great wood, which, considering that it
almost touches the town with its boughs, is wonderfully forest-like.
Not a branch being ever permitted to be lopped, the oaks and beeches
retain their natural luxuriance, and form some of the most picturesque
groups conceivable. In some places their straight boles rise sixty
feet without a bough; in others, they are bent fantastically over the
alleys, which turn and wind about just as a painter would desire. I
followed them with eagerness and curiosity, sometimes deviating from my
path amongst tufts of fern and herbage.
In these cool retreats I could not believe myself near canals and
windmills; the Dutch formalities were all forgotten whilst
contemplating the broad masses of foliage above, and the wild flowers
and grasses below. Several hares and rabbits scudded by me while I
sat; and the birds were chirping their evening song. Their
preservation does credit to the police of the country, which is so
exact and well regulated as to suffer no outrage within the precincts
of this extensive wood, the depth and thickness of which seem
calculated to favour half the sins of a capital.
Relying upon this comfortable security, I lingered unmolested amongst
the beeches till the ruddy gold of the setting sun ceased to glow on
their foliage; then taking the nearest path, I suffered myself, though
not without regret, to be conducted out of this fresh sylvan scene to
the dusty, pompous parterres of the Greffier Fagel. Every flower that
wealth can purchase diffuses its perfume on one side; whilst every
stench a canal can exhale, poisons the air on the other. These
sluggish puddles defy all the power of the United Provinces, and retain
the freedom of stinking in spite of their endeavours: but perhaps I am
too bold in my assertion; for I have no authority to mention any
attempts to purify these noxious pools. Who knows but their odour is
congenial to a Dutch constitution? One should be inclined to this
supposition by the numerous banqueting-rooms and pleasure-houses which
hang directly above their surface, and seem calculated on purpose to
enjoy them. If frogs were not excluded from the magistrature of their
country (and I cannot but think it a little hard that they are), one
should not wonder at this choice. Such burgomasters might erect their
pavilions in such situations. But, after all, I am not greatly
surprised at the fishiness of their site, since very slight authority
would persuade me there was a period when Holland was all water, and
the ancestors of the present inhabitants fish. A certain oysterishness
of eye and flabbiness of complexion are almost proofs sufficient of
this aquatic descent: and pray tell me for what purpose are such
galligaskins as the Dutch burthen themselves with contrived, but to
tuck up a flouncing tail, and thus cloak the deformity of their
dolphin-like terminations?
Having done penance for some time in the damp alleys which line the
borders of these lazy waters, I was led through corkscrew sand-walks to
a vast flat, sparingly scattered over with vegetation. To puzzle
myself in such a labyrinth there was no temptation, so taking advantage
of the lateness of the hour, and muttering a few complimentary promises
of returning at the first opportunity, I escaped the ennui of this
endless scrubbery, and got home, with the determination of being wiser
and less curious if ever my stars should bring me again to the Hague.
To-morrow I bid it adieu, and if the horses but second my endeavours,
shall be delivered in a few days from the complicated plagues of the
United Provinces.
HAERLEM, July 1st.
The sky was clear and blue when we left the Hague, and we travelled
along a shady road for about an hour, then down sunk the carriage into
a sand-bed, and we were dragged along so slowly that I fell into a
profound repose. How long it lasted is not material; but when I awoke,
we were rumbling through Leyden. There is no need to write a syllable
in honour of this illustrious city: its praises have already been sung
and said by fifty professors, who have declaimed in its university, and
smoked in its gardens. So let us get out of it as fast as we can, and
breathe the cool air of the wood near Haerlem, where we arrived just as
day declined. Hay was making in the fields, and perfumed the country
far and wide with its reviving fragrance. I promised myself a pleasant
walk in the groves, took up Gesner, and began to have pretty pastoral
ideas; but when I approached the nymphs that were dispersed on the
meads, and saw faces that would have dishonoured a flounder, and heard
accents that would have confounded a hog, all my dislike to the walking
filth of the Low Countries returned. I let fall the garlands I had
wreathed for the shepherds; we jumped into the carriage, and were
driven off to the town. Every avenue to it swarmed with people, whose
bustle and agitation seemed to announce that something extraordinary
was going forward. Upon inquiry I found it was the great fair at
Haerlem; and before we had advanced much farther, our carriage was
surrounded by idlers and gingerbread-eaters of all denominations.
Passing the gate, we came to a cluster of little illuminated booths
beneath a grove, glittering with toys and looking-glasses. It was not
without difficulty that we reached our inn, and then the plague was to
procure chambers; at last we were accommodated, and the first moment I
could call my own has been dedicated to you.
You won't be surprised at the nonsense I have written, since I tell
you the scene of the riot and uproar from whence it bears date. At
this very moment the confused murmur of voices and music stops all
regular proceedings: old women and children tattling; apes, bears, and
show-boxes under the windows; French rattling, English swearing,
outrageous Italians, frisking minstrels; tambours de basque at
every corner; myself distracted; a confounded squabble of cooks and
haranguing German couriers just arrived, their masters following
open-mouthed; nothing to eat, the steam of ham and flesh-pots all the
while provoking their appetite; Mynheers very busy with the realities,
and smoking as deliberately as if in a solitary lusthuys over the
laziest canal in the Netherlands; squeaking chambermaids in the
galleries above, and prudish dames below, half inclined to receive the
golden solicitations of certain beauties for admittance, but positively
refusing them the moment some creditable personage appears; eleven
o'clock strikes; half the lights in the fair are extinguished; scruples
grow less and less delicate; Mammon prevails, darkness and complaisance
succeed. Good-night; may you sleep better than I shall.
UTRECHT, July 2nd.
Well, thank Heaven, Amsterdam is behind us! How I got thither
signifies not one farthing; it was all along a canal, as usual. The
weather was hot enough to broil an inhabitant of Bengal; and the
odours, exhaling from every quarter, sufficiently powerful to regale
the nose of a Hottentot.
Under these agreeable circumstances we entered the great city. The
Stadt-huys being the only cool place it contained, I repaired thither
as fast as the heat permitted, and walked in a lofty marble hall,
magnificently covered, till the dinner was ready at the inn. That
despatched, we set off for Utrecht. Both sides of the way are lined
with the country-houses and gardens of opulent citizens, as fine as
gilt statues and clipped hedges can make them. Their number is quite
astonishing: from Amsterdam to Utrecht, full thirty miles, we beheld no
other objects than endless avenues and stiff parterres scrawled and
flourished in patterns like the embroidery of an old maid's work-bag.
Notwithstanding this formal taste, I could not help admiring the
neatness and arrangement of every inclosure, enlivened by a profusion
of flowers, and decked with arbours, beneath which a vast number of
round unmeaning faces were solacing themselves after the heat of the
day. Each lusthuys we passed contained some comfortable party dozing
over their pipes, or angling in the muddy fish-ponds below. Scarce an
avenue but swarmed with female josses; little squat pug-dogs waddling
at their sides, the attributes, I suppose, of these fair divinities.
But let us leave them to loiter thus amiably in their Elysian groves,
and arrive at Utrecht; which, as nothing very remarkable claimed my
attention, I hastily quitted to visit a Moravian establishment at
Siest, in its neighbourhood. The chapel, a large house, late the
habitation of Count Zinzendorf, and a range of apartments filled with
the holy fraternity, are totally wrapped in dark groves, overgrown with
weeds, amongst which some damsels were straggling, under the immediate
protection of their pious brethren.
Traversing the woods, we found ourselves in a large court, built
round with brick edifices, the grass-plats in a deplorable way, and one
ragged goat, their only inhabitant, on a little expiatory scheme,
perhaps, for the failings of the fraternity. I left this poor animal
to ruminate in solitude, and followed my guide into a series of shops
furnished with gew-gaws and trinkets, said to be manufactured by the
female part of the society. Much cannot be boasted of their
handiworks: I expressed a wish to see some of these industrious fair
ones; but, upon receiving no answer, found this was a subject of
which there was no discourse.
Consoling myself as well as I was able, I put myself under the
guidance of another slovenly disciple, who showed me the chapel, and
harangued very pathetically upon celestial love. In my way thither, I
caught a glimpse of some pretty sempstresses, warbling melodious hymns
as they sat needling and thimbling at their windows above. I had a
great inclination to have approached this busy group, but the roll of
the brother's eye corrected me.
Reflecting upon my unworthiness, I retired from the consecrated
buildings, and was driven back to Utrecht, not a little amused with my
expedition. If you are as well disposed to be pleased as I was, I
shall esteem myself very lucky, and not repent sending you so incorrect
a narrative. I really have not time to look it over, and am growing so
drowsy, that you will, I hope, pardon all its errors, when you consider
that my pen writes in its sleep.
SPA, July 6th.
From Utrecht to Bois le Duc nothing but sand and heath; no
inspiration, no whispering foliage, not even a grasshopper, to put one
in mind of Eclogues and Theocritus. “But why did you not fall into one
of your beloved slumbers, and dream of poetic mountains? This was the
very country to shut one's eyes upon without disparagement.” Why so I
did, but the postillions and boatmen obliged me to open them, as soon
as they were closed. Four times was I shoved, out of my visions, into
leaky boats, and towed across as many idle rivers. I thought there was
no end of these tiresome transits; and, when I reached my journey's
end, was so completely jaded that I almost believed Charon would be the
next aquatic I should have to deal with. The fair light of the morning
(Tuesday, July 4th) was scarcely sufficient to raise my spirits, and I
had left Bois le Duc a good way in arrears before I was thoroughly
convinced of my existence; when I looked through the blinds of the
carriage, and saw nothing but barren plains and mournful willows, banks
clad with rushes, and heifers so black and dismal that Proserpine
herself would have given them up to Hecate. I was near believing
myself in the neighbourhood of a certain evil place, where I should be
punished for all my croakings. We travelled at this rate, I dare say,
fifteen miles, without seeing a single shed: at last, one or two
miserable cottages appeared, darkened by heath, and stuck in a
sand-pit; from whence issued a half-starved generation, that pursued us
a long while with their piteous wailings. The heavy roads and ugly
prospects, together with the petulant clamours of my petitioners, made
me quite uncharitable. I was in a dark, remorseless mood, which lasted
me till we reached Brée, a shabby decayed town, encompassed by walls
and ruined turrets. Having nothing to do, I straggled about them, till
night shaded the dreary prospects, and gave me an opportunity of
imagining them, if I pleased, noble and majestic. Several of these
waning edifices were invested with thick ivy: the evening was chill,
and I crept under their covert. Two or three brother owls were before
me, but politely gave up their pretensions to the spot, and, as soon as
I appeared, with a rueful whoop flitted away to some deeper
retirement. I had scarcely begun to mope in tranquillity, before a
rapid shower trickled amongst the clusters above me, and forced me to
abandon my haunt. Returning in the midst of it to my inn, I hurried to
bed, and was soon lulled asleep by the storm. A dream bore me off to
Persepolis; and led me thro' vast subterraneous treasures to a hall,
where Solomon, methought, was holding forth upon their vanity. I was
upon the very point of securing a part of this immense wealth, and
fancied myself writing down the sage prophet's advice how to make use
of it, when a loud vociferation in the street, and the bell of a
neighbouring chapel, dispersed the vision. Starting up, I threw open
the windows, and found it was eight o'clock (Wednesday, July 5th), and
had hardly rubbed my eyes, before beggars came limping from every
quarter. I knew their plaguy voices but too well; and that the same
hubbub had broken my slumbers, and driven me from wisdom and riches to
the regions of ignorance and poverty. The halt, the lame, and the
blind, being restored, by the miracle of a few stivers, to their
functions, we breakfasted in peace, and, gaining the carriage, waded
through sandy deserts to Maestricht: our view, however, was
considerably improved, for a league round the town, and presented some
hills and pleasant valleys, smiling with crops of grain: here and
there, green meadows, spread over with hay, varied the prospect, which
the chirping of birds (the first I had heard for many a tedious day)
amongst the barley, rendered so cheerful, that I began, like them, my
exultations, and was equally thoughtless and serene. I need scarcely
tell you, that, leaving the coach, I pursued a deep furrow between two
extensive corn-fields, and reposed upon a bank of flowers, the golden
ears waving above my head, and entirely bounding my prospect. Here I
lay, in peace and sunshine, a few happy moments; contemplating the blue
sky, and fancying myself restored to the valley at F., where I have
passed so many happy hours, shut out from the world, and concealed in
the bosom of harvests. It was then I first grew so fond of dreaming;
and no wonder, since I have frequently imagined that Ceres did not
disdain to inspire my slumbers; but, half concealed, half visible,
would tell me amusing stories of her reapers; and, sometimes more
seriously inclined, recite the affecting tale of her misfortunes. At
midday, when all was still, and a warm haze seemed to repose on the
face of the landscape, I have often fancied this celestial voice
bewailing Proserpine, in the most pathetic accents. From these sacred
moments I resolved to offer sacrifice in the fields of Enna; to explore
their fragrant recesses, and experience whether the Divinity would not
manifest herself to me in her favourite domain. It was this vow, which
tempted me from my native valleys. Its execution, therefore, being my
principal aim, I deserted my solitary bank and proceeded on my
journey. Maestricht abounds in Gothic churches, but contains no temple
to Ceres. I was not sorry to quit it, after spending an hour
unavoidably within its walls. Our road was conducted up a considerable
eminence, from the summit of which we discovered a range of woody
steeps, extending for leagues; beneath lay a winding valley, richly
variegated and lighted up by the Maese. The evening sun, scarcely
gleaming through hazy clouds, cast a pale, tender hue upon the
landscape, and the copses, still dewy with a shower that had lately
fallen, diffused the most grateful fragrance. Flocks of sheep hung
browsing on the acclivities, whilst a numerous herd were dispersed
along the river's side. I stayed so long, enjoying this pastoral
scene, that we did not arrive at Liège till the night was advanced, and
the moon risen. Her interesting gleams were thrown away upon this
ill-built, crowded city; and I grieved that gates and fortifications
prevented my breathing the fresh air of the surrounding mountains.
Next morning (July 6th) a zigzag road brought us, after many descents
and rises, to Spa. The approach, through a rocky vale, is not totally
devoid of picturesque merit, and as I met no cabriolets or tituppings
on the chaufée, I concluded that the waters were not as yet much
visited; and that I should have their romantic environs pretty much to
myself. But, alas, how rudely was I deceived! The moment we entered
up flew a dozen sashes. Chevaliers de St. Louis, meagre Marquises, and
ladies of the scarlet order of Babylon, all poked their heads out. In
a few minutes half the town was in motion; tailors, confectioners, and
barbers thrusting bills into our hands with manifold grimaces and
contortions. Then succeeded a grand entré of valets de place, who were hardly dismissed before the lodging letters arrived, followed
by somebody with a list of les seigneurs and dames as
long as a Welsh pedigree. Half-an-hour was wasted in speeches and
recommendations; another passed before we could snatch a morsel of
refreshment; they then finding I was neither inclined to go to the
ball, nor enter the land where Pharaoh reigneth, peace was restored, a
few feeble bows were scraped, and I found myself in perfect solitude.
Taking advantage of this quiet moment, I stole out of town, and
followed a path cut in the rocks, which brought me to a young wood of
oaks on their summits. Luckily I met no saunterer: the gay vagabonds,
it seemed, were all at the assembly, as happy as billiards and
chit-chat could make them. It was not an evening to tempt such folks
abroad. The air was cool, and the sky lowering; a melancholy cloud
shaded the wild hills and irregular woods at a distance. There was
something so importunate in their appearance, that I could not help
asking their name, and was told they were skirts of the forest of
Ardenne, amongst whose enchanted labyrinths the heroes of Boyardo and
Ariosto roved formerly in quest of adventures. I felt myself
singularly affected whilst gazing upon a wood so celebrated in romance
for feats of the highest chivalry; and, Don Quixote-like, would have
explored its recesses in search of that memorable fountain of hatred,
which (if you recollect the story) was raised by Merlin to free
illustrious knights and damsels from the torments of rejected love. So
far was I advanced in these romantic fancies, that, forgetting the
lateness of the hour, I wandered on, expecting to reach the fountain at
every step; but at length it grew so dusky that, unable to trace back
my way amongst the thickets, in vain I strayed through intricate
copses, till the clouds began to disperse and the moon appeared. Being
so placed as to receive the full play of silver radiance, to my no
small surprise, I beheld a precipice immediately beneath my feet. The
chasm was deep and awful; something like the entrance to a grot
discovered itself below, and if I had not already been disappointed on
the score of the fount, I won't answer but that I should have flung
myself adventurously down, and tried whether I might not have seen such
wonders as appeared to Bradamante, when cast by Pinnabel, rather
impolitely, into Merlin's cave. But no propitious light beaming from
the cavity, I concluded times were changed; and searching about me,
found at last a shelving steep, which it was just possible to descend
without goat's heels, and that's all.
In my way home, I passed the redoute, and seeing a vast glare of
lustres in its apartments, I ran upstairs and found the gamblers all
eager in storming the Pharaoh Bank: a young Englishman of distinction
seemed the most likely to raise the siege, which increased every
instant in turbulence; but not feeling the least inclination to
protract or to shorten its fate, I left the knights to their
adventures, and returned ingloriously to my inn.
All languages are chattering at the Table d'Hôte, and all sorts of
business transacted under my very windows. The racket and perfume of
this place make me resolve to get out of it to-morrow; as that is the
case, you won't hear from me till I reach Munich. Adieu! May we meet
in our dreams by the fountain of Merlin, and from thence take our
flight with Astolpho to the moon; for I shrewdly suspect the best part
of our senses are bottled up there; and then, you know, it will be a
delightful novelty to wake up with a clear understanding.
“Indeed, Sir, no Monsieur comme il faut, ever left Spa in such
dudgeon before, unless jilted by a Polish princess, or stripped by an
itinerant Count! You have neither breakfasted at the Vauxhall, nor
attended the Spectacle, nor tasted the waters. Had you but taken one
sip, your ill-humour would have all trickled away, and you would have
felt both your heels and your elbows quite alive in the evening.”—
Granted; but pray tell your postillions to drive off as fast as their
horses will carry them.
Away we went to Aix-la-Chapelle about ten at night, and saw the
mouldering turrets of that once illustrious capital by the help of a
candle and lantern. An old woman asked our names (for not a single
soldier appeared); and traversing a number of superannuated streets
without perceiving the least trace of Charlemagne or his Paladins, we
procured comfortable though not magnificent apartments, and slept most
unheroically sound, till it was time to set forward for Dusseldorf.
July 8th.—As we were driven out of the town, I caught
a glimpse of a grove, hemmed in by dingy buildings, where a few
water-drinkers were sauntering along to the sound of some rueful French
horns; the wan greenish light admitted through the foliage made them
look like unhappy souls condemned to an eternal lounge for having
trifled away their existence. It was not with much regret that I left
such a party behind; and, after experiencing the vicissitudes of good
roads and rumbling pavements, found myself, towards the close of
evening, upon the banks of the Rhine.
Many wild ideas thronged into my mind, the moment I beheld this
celebrated river. I thought of the vast regions through which it
flows, and suffered my imagination to expatiate as far as its source.
A red, variegated sky, reflected from the stream, the woods trembling
on its banks, and the spires of Nuys rising beyond them, helped to
amuse my fancy. Not being able to brook the confinement of the
carriage, I left it to come over at its leisure; and, stepping into a
boat, rowed along, at first, by the quivering osiers; then, launching
out into the midst of the waters, I glided a few moments with the
current, and resting on my oars, listened to the hum of voices afar
off, while several little skiffs, like canoes, glanced before my sight,
concerning which distance and the twilight allowed me to make a
thousand fantastic conjectures. When I had sufficiently indulged these
extravagant reveries, I began to cross over the river in good earnest;
and being landed on its opposite margin, travelled forwards to the
town.
Nothing but the famous gallery of paintings could invite strangers to
stay a moment within its walls; more crooked streets, more indifferent
houses, one seldom meets with; except soldiers, not a living creature
moving about them; and at night a complete regiment of bugs “marked me
for their own.” Thus I lay, at once both the seat of war and the
victim of these detestable animals, till early in the morning (Sunday,
July 9th), when Morpheus, compassionating my sufferings, opened the
ivory gates of his empire, and freed his votary from the most
unconscionable vermin that ever nastiness engendered. In humble prose,
I fell fast asleep; and remained quiet, in defiance of my adversaries,
till it was time to survey the cabinet.
This collection is displayed in five large galleries, and contains
some valuable productions of the Italian school; but the room most
boasted of is that which Rubens has filled with no less than three
enormous representations of the last day, where an innumerable host of
sinners are exhibited as striving in vain to avoid the tangles of the
devil's tail. The woes of several fat luxurious souls are rendered in
the highest gusto. Satan's dispute with some brawny concubines, whom
he is lugging off in spite of all their resistance, cannot be too much
admired by those who approve this class of subject, and think such
strange imbroglios in the least calculated to raise a sublime or a
religious idea.
For my own part, I turned from them with disgust, and hastened to
contemplate a Holy Family by Camillo Procaccini, in another apartment.
The brightest imagination can never conceive any figure more graceful
than that of the young Jesus; and if ever I beheld an inspired
countenance or celestial features, it was here: but to attempt
conveying in words what colours alone can express, would be only
reversing the absurdity of many a master in the gallery, who aims to
represent those ideas by colours which language alone is able to
describe. Should you admit this opinion, you won't be surprised at my
passing such a multitude of renowned pictures unnoticed; nor at my
bringing you out of the cabinet without deluging ten pages with
criticisms in the style of the ingenious Lady M—-.
As I had spent so much time in gazing at Camillo's divinity, the day
was too far advanced to think of travelling to Cologne; I was therefore
obliged to put myself once more under the dominion of the most
inveterate bugs in the universe. This government, like many others,
made but an indifferent use of its power, and the subject suffering
accordingly was extremely rejoiced at flying from his persecutors to
Cologne.
July 10th.—Clouds of dust hindered my making any
remarks on the exterior of this celebrated city; but if its appearance
be not more beautiful from without than within, I defy Mr. Salmon
himself to launch forth very warmly in its praise. But of what avail
are stately palaces, broad streets, or airy markets, to a town which
can boast of such a treasure as the bodies of those three wise
sovereigns who were star-led to Bethlehem? Is not this circumstance
enough to procure it every respect? I really believe so, from the
pious and dignified contentment of its inhabitants. They care not a
hair of an ass's ear whether their houses be gloomy and ill-contrived,
their pavements overgrown with weeds, and their shops with filthiness,
provided the carcasses of Gaspar, Melchior, and Balthazar might be
preserved with proper decorum. Nothing, to be sure, can be richer than
the shrine which contains these precious relics. I paid my devotions
before it the moment I arrived; this step was inevitable: had I omitted
it, not a soul in Cologne but would have cursed me for a Pagan.
Do you not wonder at hearing of these venerable bodies so far from
their native country? I thought them snug in some Arabian pyramid ten
feet deep in spice; but you see one can never tell what is to become of
one a few ages hence. Who knows but the Emperor of Morocco may be
canonized some future day in Lapland? I asked, of course, how in the
name of miracles they came hither; but found no story of a supernatural
conveyance. It seems the holy Empress Helena, as great a collectress
of relics as the D—-s of P. is of profane curiosities, first routed
them out: then they were packed off to Rome. King Alaric, having no
grace, bundled them down to Milan; where they remained till it pleased
God to inspire an ancient archbishop with the fervent wish of
depositing them at Cologne. There these skeletons were taken into the
most especial consideration, crowned with jewels and filigreed with
gold. Never were skulls more elegantly mounted; and I doubt whether
Odin's buffet could exhibit so fine an assortment. The chapel
containing these beatified bones is placed in a dark extremity of the
cathedral. Several golden lamps gleam along the polished marbles with
which it is adorned, and afford just light enough to read the following
monkish inscription:-
“CORPORA SANCTORUM RECUBANT HIC TERNA MAGORUM;
EX HIS SUBLATUM NIHIL EST ALIBIVE LOCATUM.”
After I had satisfied my curiosity with respect to the peregrinations
of the consecrated skeletons, I examined their shrine; and was rather
surprised to find it not only enriched with barbaric gold and pearl,
but covered with cameos and intaglios of the best antique sculpture.
Many an impious emperor and gross Silenus, many a wanton nymph and
frantic bacchanal, figure in the same range with the statues of saints
and evangelists. How St. Helena could tolerate such a mixed assembly
(for the shrine was formed under her auspices) surpasses my
comprehension. Perhaps you will say it is no great matter, and give me
a hint to move out of the chapel, lest the three kings and their star
should lead me quite out of my way. Very well; I think I had better
stop in time, to tell you, without further excursion, that we set off
after dinner for Bonn.
Our road-side was lined with beggarly children, high convent walls,
and scarecrow crucifixes, lubberly monks, dejected peasants, and all
the delights of Catholicism. Such scenery not engaging a share of my
attention, I kept gazing at the azure irregular mountains which bounded
our view, and in thought was already transported to their summits.
Various are the prospects I surveyed from this imaginary exaltation,
and innumerable the chimeras which trotted in my brain. Mounted on
these fantastic quadrupeds, I shot swiftly from rock to rock, and built
castles in the style of Piranesi upon most of their pinnacles. The
magnificence and variety of my aërial towers hindered my thinking the
way long. I was still walking with a crowd of phantoms upon their
terraces, when the carriage made a halt. Immediately descending the
innumerable flights of steps which divide such lofty edifices from the
lower world, I entered the inn at Bonn, and was shown into an apartment
which commands the chief front of the Elector's palace. You may guess
how contemptible it appeared to one just returned from the court of
fancy.
In other respects, I saw it in a very favourable moment; for the
twilight, shading the whole façade, concealed its plaistered walls and
painted pillars; their pediments and capitals being tolerably well
proportioned, and the range of windows beneath considerable, I gave the
architect more credit than he deserved, and paced to and fro beneath
the arcade, as pompously as if arrived at the Vatican; but the
circumstance which rendered my walk in reality agreeable, was the
prevalence of a delicious perfume. It was so dusky, that I was a
minute or two seeking in vain the entrance of an orangery, from whence
this reviving scent proceeded. At length I discovered it; and, passing
under an arch, found myself in the midst of lemon and orange trees, now
in the fullest blow, which form a continued grove before the palace,
and extend, on each side of its grand portal, out of sight. A few
steps separate this extensive terrace from a lawn, bordered by stately
rows of beeches. Beyond, in the centre of this striking theatre, rises
a romantic assemblage of distant mountains, crowned with the ruins of
castles, whose turrets, but faintly seen, were just such as you have
created to complete a prospect. I was the only human being in the
misty extent of the gardens, and was happier in my solitude than I can
describe. No noise disturbed its silence, except the flutter of moths
and trickling of fountains. These undecided sounds, corresponding with
the dimness and haze of the scenery, threw me into a pensive state of
mind, neither gay nor dismal. I recapitulated the wayward adventures
of my childhood, and traced back each moment of a period, which had
seen me happy. Then, turning my thoughts towards future days, my heart
beat at the idea of that awful veil which covers the time to come. One
moment, 'twas the brightest hope that glittered behind it; the next, a
series of melancholy images clouded the perspective. Thus, alternately
swayed by fears and exultation, I passed an interesting hour in the
twilight, ranging amongst the orange trees, or reclined by the
fountain. I could not boast of being perfectly satisfied, since those
were absent, without whom not even the fields of Enna could be
charming. However, I was far from displeased with the clear streams
that bubbled around, and could willingly have dropped asleep by their
margin. Had I reposed in so romantic a situation, the murmurs of trees
and waters would doubtless have invited “some strange mysterious dream"
to hover over me, and perhaps futurity might have been unveiled.
July 11th.—Let those who delight in picturesque
country repair to the borders of the Rhine, and follow the road which
we took from Bonn to Coblentz. In some places it is suspended like a
cornice above the waters; in others, it winds behind lofty steeps and
broken acclivities, shaded by woods and clothed with an endless variety
of plants and flowers. Several green paths lead amongst this
vegetation to the summits of the rocks, which often serve as the
foundation of abbeys and castles, whose lofty roofs and spires, rising
above the cliffs, impress passengers with ideas of their grandeur, that
might probably vanish upon a nearer approach. Not choosing to lose any
prejudice in their favour, I kept a respectful distance whenever I left
my carriage, and walked on the banks of the river.
Just before we came to Andernach, an antiquated town with strange
morisco-looking towers, I spied a raft, at least three hundred feet in
length, on which ten or twelve cottages were erected, and a great many
people employed in sawing wood. The women sat spinning at their doors,
whilst their children played among the water-lilies that bloomed in
abundance on the edge of the stream. A smoke, rising from one of these
aquatic habitations, partially obscured the mountains beyond, and added
not a little, to their effect.
Altogether, the scene was so novel and amusing, that I sat half an
hour contemplating it from an eminence under the shade of some leafy
walnuts; and should like extremely to build a moveable village, people
it with my friends, and so go floating about from island to island, and
from one woody coast of the Rhine to another. Would you dislike such a
party? I am much deceived, or you would be the first to explore the
shades and promontories beneath which we should be wafted along.
But I don't think you would find Coblentz, where we were obliged to
take up our night's lodging, much to your taste. 'Tis a mean, dirty
assemblage of plastered houses, striped with paint, and set off with
wooden galleries, in the beautiful taste of St. Giles's. Above, on a
rock, stands the palace of the Elector, which seems to be remarkable
for nothing but situation. I did not bestow many looks on this
structure whilst ascending the mountain across which our road to
Mayence conducted us.
July 12th.—Having attained the summit, we discovered
a vast, irregular range of country, and advancing, found ourselves
amongst downs bounded by forests and purpled with thyme. This sort of
prospect extending for several leagues, I walked on the turf, and
inhaled with avidity the fresh gales that blew over its herbage, till I
came to a steep slope overgrown with privet and a variety of luxuriant
shrubs in blossom; there reposing beneath its shade, I gathered
flowers, listened to the bees, observed their industry, and idled away
a few minutes with great fascination. A cloudless sky and bright
sunshine made me rather loth to move on; but the charms of the
landscape, increasing every instant, drew me forward.
I had not gone far, before a winding valley discovered itself, shut
in by rocks and mountains clothed to their very summits with the
thickest woods. A broad river, flowing at the base of the cliffs,
reflected the impending vegetation, and looked so calm and glassy that
I was determined to be better acquainted with it. For this purpose we
descended by a zigzag path into the vale, and making the best of our
way on the banks of the Lune (for so is the river called), came
suddenly upon the town of Ems, famous in mineral story; where finding
very good lodgings, we took up our abode, and led an Indian life
amongst the wilds and mountains.
After supper I walked on a smooth lawn by the river, to observe the
moon journeying through a world of silver clouds that lay dispersed
over the face of the heavens. It was a mild genial evening; every
mountain cast its broad shadow on the surface of the stream; lights
twinkled afar off on the hills; they burnt in silence. All were
asleep, except a female figure in white, with glow-worms shining in her
hair. She kept moving disconsolately about; sometimes I heard her
sigh; and if apparitions sigh, this must have been an apparition. Upon
my return, I asked a thousand questions, but could never obtain any
information of the figure and its luminaries.
July 13th.—The pure air of the morning invited me
early to the hills. Hiring a skiff, I rowed about a mile down the
stream, and landed on a sloping meadow, level with the waters, and
newly mown. Heaps of hay still lay dispersed under the copses which
hemmed in on every side this little sequestered paradise. What a spot
for a tent! I could encamp here for months, and never be tired. Not a
day would pass by without discovering some new promontory, some
untrodden pasture, some unsuspected vale, where I might remain among
woods and precipices lost and forgotten. I would give you, and two or
three more, the clue of my labyrinth: nobody else should be conscious
of its entrance. Full of such agreeable dreams, I rambled about the
meads, scarcely knowing which way I was going; sometimes a spangled fly
led me astray, and, oftener, my own strange fancies. Between both, I
was perfectly bewildered, and should never have found my boat again,
had not an old German naturalist, who was collecting fossils on the
cliffs, directed me to it.
When I got home it was growing late, and I now began to perceive that
I had taken no refreshment, except the perfume of the hay and a few
wood strawberries; airy diet, you will observe, for one not yet
received into the realms of Ginnistan.
{127}
July 14th.—I have just made a discovery, that this
place as full of idlers and water-drinkers as their Highnesses of
Orange and Hesse Darmstadt can desire; for to them accrue all the
profits of its salubrious fountains. I protest, I knew nothing of all
this yesterday, so entirely was I taken up with the rocks and meadows;
no chance of meeting either card or billiard players in their
solitudes. Both abound at Ems, where they hop and fidget from ball to
ball, unconscious of the bold scenery in their neighbourhood, and
totally insensible to its charms. They had no notion, not they, of
admiring barren crags and precipices, where even the Lord would lose
his way, as a coarse lubber decorated with stars and orders very
ingeniously observed to me; nor could they form the least conception of
any pleasure there was in climbing like a goat amongst the cliffs, and
then diving into woods and recesses where the sun had never penetrated;
where there were neither card-tables prepared nor sideboards garnished;
no jambon de Mayence in waiting; no supply of pipes, nor any of
the commonest delights, to be met with in the commonest taverns.
To all this I acquiesced with most perfect submission, but
immediately left the orator to entertain a circle of antiquated dames
and weather-beaten officers who were gathering around him. Scarcely
had I turned my back upon this polite assembly, when Monsieur
l'Administrateur des bains, a fine pompous fellow, who had been
maitre d'hôtel in a great German family, came forward purposely to
acquaint me, I suppose, that their baths had the honour of possessing
Prince Orloff, “avec sa grande maitresse, son Chamberlain et
quelques Dames d'Honneur:” moreover, that his Highness came hither
to refresh himself after his laborious employments at the Court of
Petersburg, and expected (grace aux eaux!) to return to the
domains his august sovereign had lately bestowed upon him in perfect
health, and to become the father of his people.
Wishing Monsieur d'Orloff all possible success, I should have left
the company at a great distance, had not a violent shower stopped my
career, and obliged me to return to my apartment. The rain growing
heavier, intercepted the prospect of the mountains, and spread such a
gloom over the vale as sank my spirits fifty degrees; to which a close
foggy atmosphere not a little contributed. Towards night the clouds
assumed a more formidable aspect. Thunder rolled awfully along the
distant cliffs, and several rapid torrents began to run down the
steeps. Unable to stay within, I walked into an open portico,
listening to the murmur of the river, mingled with the roar of falling
waters. At intervals a blue flash of lightning discovered their
agitated surface, and two or three scared women rushing through the
storm and calling all the saints in Paradise to their assistance.
Things were in this state, when the orator who had harangued so
brilliantly on the nothingness of ascending mountains, took shelter
under the porch, and entering immediately into conversation, regaled my
ears with a woful narration of murders which had happened the other day
on the precise road I was to follow next morning.
“Sir,” said he, “your route is, to be sure, very perilous: on the
left you have a chasm, down which, should your horses take the smallest
alarm, you are infallibly precipitated; to the right hangs an
impervious wood, and there, sir, I can assure you, are wolves enough to
devour a regiment; a little farther on, you cross a desolate tract of
forest land, the roads so deep and broken, that if you go ten paces in
as many minutes you may think yourself fortunate. There lurk the most
savage banditti in Europe, lately irritated by the Prince of Orange's
proscription; and so desperate, that if they once attack, you can
expect no mercy. Should you venture through this hazardous district
to-morrow, you will, in all probability, meet a company of people who
have just left the town to search for the mangled bodies of their
relations; but, for Heaven's sake, sir, if you value your life, do not
suffer an idle curiosity to lead you over such dangerous regions,
however picturesque their appearance.”
I own I felt rather intimidated by so formidable a prospect, and was
very near abandoning my plan of crossing the mountains, and so go back
again and round about, the Lord knows where; but considering this step
would be quite unheroical, I resolved to attribute my fears to the
gloom of the moment, and the dejection it occasioned. It was almost
nine o'clock before my kind adviser ceased inspiring me with terrors;
then, finding myself at liberty, I retired to bed, not under the most
agreeable impressions; and after tossing and tumbling in the agitation
of tumultuous slumbers, I started up at seven in the morning of July
15th, ordered the horses, and set forward, without further dilemmas.
Though it had thundered almost the whole night, the air was still
clogged with vapours, the mountains bathed in humid clouds, and the
scene I had so warmly admired no longer discernible. Proceeding along
the edge of the precipices I had been forewarned of, for about an hour,
and escaping that peril at least, we traversed the slopes of a rude,
heathy hill, in instantaneous expectation of foes and murderers. A
misty rain prevented us seeing above ten yards before us, and every
uncouth oak or rocky fragment we approached seemed lurking spies or
gigantic enemies. One time the murmur of the wind among invisible
woods of beech, sounded like the wail of distress; and at another the
noise of a torrent we could not discover, counterfeited the report of
musquetry. In this suspicious manner we journeyed through the forest
which had so recently been the scene of assaults and depredations. At
length, after winding several restless hours amongst its dreary
avenues, we emerged into open daylight. The sky cleared, a cultivated
vale lay before us, and the evening sun, gleaming bright through the
vapours, cast a cheerful look upon some corn-fields, and seemed to
promise better times. A few minutes more brought us safe to the
village of Viesbaden, where we slept in peace and tranquillity.
July 16th.—Our apprehensions entirely dispersed, we
rose light and refreshed from our slumbers, and passing through
Mayence, Oppenheim, and Worms, travelled gaily over the plain in which
Mannheim is situated. The sun set before we arrived there, and it was
by the mild gleams of the rising moon, that I first beheld the vast
electoral palace, and those long straight streets and neat white
houses, which distinguish this elegant capital from almost every other.
Numbers of well-dressed people were amusing themselves with music and
fireworks in the squares and open spaces; other groups appeared
conversing in circles before their doors, and enjoying the serenity of
the evening. Almost every window bloomed with carnations; and we could
hardly cross a street without hearing the German flute. A scene of
such happiness and refinement contrasted in the most agreeable manner
with the dismal prospects we had left behind. No storms, no frightful
chasms, were here to alarm us, no ruffians or lawless plunderers. All
around was peace, security, and contentment in their most engaging
attire.
July 17th.—Though all impatience to reach that
delightful classic region which already possesses, as I have often
said, the better half of my spirit, I could not think of leaving
Mannheim unexplored; and therefore resolved to give up the day to the
halls and galleries of the electoral palace. Those, which contain the
cabinet of paintings and sculptures in ivory, form a regular suite of
nine immense apartments, about three hundred and seventy-two feet in
length, well-proportioned and uniformly floored with inlaid wood. Each
room has ample folding-doors richly gilt and varnished. When seen in
perspective these entrances have the most magnificent effect
imaginable. Nothing can give nobler ideas of space than such an
enfilade of saloons unencumbered by heavy furniture, where the eyes
range without interruption: I wandered alone from one to the other, and
was never wearied with contemplating the variety of pictures which
enliven the scene, and convey the highest idea of the collector's
taste. When my curiosity was a little satisfied, I left this amusing
series of apartments with regret, visited the library which the present
Elector Palatine has formed, upon the same great scale that
characterizes his other collections, and, after viewing the rest of the
palace, saw the opera house, which may boast of having contained one of
the first bands in Europe: from thence I returned home in a very
musical humour.
An excellent harpsichord seconded this disposition, which lasted me
till late in the evening; when growing drowsy, I yielded to the
influence of sleep, and was in an instant transported to a far more
delightful palace than that of the elector; where I expatiated in
perfumed apartments with yellow light, and conversed with none but
Albano and Claude Lorrain, till the beams of the morning sun entered my
chamber, and forced my visiting companions to fly murmuring to the
shades. I cannot say but I was sorry to leave Mannheim, though my
acquaintance with it was entirely confined to inanimate objects. The
cheerful air and free range of the galleries would be sufficient, for
several days, for my amusement; as you know I could people them with
phantoms. Not many leagues out of town, lie the famous gardens of
Schweidsing. The weather being extremely warm, we were glad to avail
ourselves of their shades. There are a great many fountains inclosed
by thickets of shrubs, and cool alleys which lead to arbours of
trellis-work, festooned with nasturtiums and convolvuluses. Several
catalpas and sumachs in full flower gave considerable richness to the
scenery; and whilst we walked amongst them, a fresh breeze gently waved
their summits. The tall poplars and acacias, quivering with the air,
cast innumerable shadows on the intervening plats of greensward, and,
as they moved their branches, discovered other walks beyond, and
distant jets of water rising above their foliage, and sparkling in the
sun. After passing a multitude of shady avenues, terminated by temples
or groups of statues, we followed our guide through a kind of arched
bower to a little opening in the wood, neatly paved with different
coloured pebbles. On one side, appeared niches and alcoves, ornamented
with spars and polished marbles; on the other, an aviary; in front, a
superb pavilion, with baths, porticos, and cabinets, fitted up in the
most elegant and luxurious style. The song of exotic birds; the
freshness of the surrounding verdure heightened by falling streams; and
that dubious poetic light admitted through thick foliage, so agreeable
after the glare of a sultry day, detained me for some time in an alcove
reading Spenser, and imagining myself but a few paces removed from the
Idle Lake. I would fain have loitered an hour more in this enchanted
bower, had not the gardener, whose patience was quite exhausted, and
who had never heard of the Red-Cross Knight and his achievements,
dragged me away to a sunburnt, contemptible hillock, commanding the
view of a serpentine ditch, and decorated with the title of Jardin
Anglois. Some object like decayed limekilns and mouldering ovens, is
disposed in an amphitheatrical form, on the declivity of this
tremendous eminence: and there is to be ivy, and a cascade, and what
not, as my conductor observed. A glance was all I bestowed on this
caricature upon English gardens; I then went off in a huff at being
chased from my bower, and grumbled all the road to Entsweigen; where,
to our misfortune, we lay amidst hogs and vermin, who amply revenged my
quarrels with their country.
July 20th.—After travelling a post or two, we came in
sight of a green moor, with many insulated woods and villages; the
Danube sweeping majestically along, and the city of Ulm rising upon its
banks. The fields in its neighbourhood were overspread with cloths
bleaching in the sun, and waiting for barks which convey them down the
great river, in ten days, to Vienna, and from thence through Hungary,
into the midst of the Turkish Empire. I almost envied the merchants
their voyage, and descending to the edge of the stream, proffered my
orisons to Father Danube, beseeching him to remember me to the regions
through which he flows. I promised him an altar and solemn rites,
should he grant my request, and was very idolatrous, until the shadows
lengthening over the unlimited plains on his margin, reminded me that
the sun would be shortly sunk, and that I had still above fifteen miles
to go. Gathering a purple iris that grew upon the bank, I wore it to
his honour; and have reason to fancy my piety was rewarded, as not a
fly or an insect dared to buzz about me the whole evening.
You never saw a brighter sky nor more glowing clouds than gilded our
horizon. The air was impregnated with the perfume of clover, and for
ten miles we beheld no other objects than smooth levels enamelled with
flowers, and interspersed with thickets of oak, beyond which appeared a
long series of mountains, that distance and the evening tinged with an
interesting azure. Such were the very spots for youthful games and
exercises, open spaces for tilts, and spreading shades to screen the
spectators.
Father Lafiteau tells us, there are many such vast and flowery meads
in the interior of America, to which the roving tribes of Indians
repair once or twice in a century to settle the rights of the chase,
and lead their solemn dances; and so deep an impression do these
assemblies leave on the minds of the savages, that the highest ideas
they entertain of future felicity consist in the perpetual enjoyment of
songs and dances upon the green boundless lawns of their elysium. In
the midst of these visionary plains rises the abode of Aneantsic,
encircled by choirs of departed chieftains leaping in cadence to the
mournful sound of spears as they ring on the shell of the tortoise.
Their favourite attendants, long separated from them whilst on earth,
are restored again in this ethereal region, and skim freely over the
vast level space; now hailing one group of beloved friends, and now
another. Mortals newly ushered by death into this world of pure blue
sky and boundless meads, see the long-lost objects of their affection
advancing across the lawn to meet them. Flights of familiar birds, the
purveyors of many an earthly chase, once more attend their progress,
whilst the shades of their faithful dogs seem coursing each other
below. Low murmurs and tinkling sounds fill the whole region, and, as
its new denizens proceed, increase in melody, till, unable to resist
the thrilling music, they spring forward in ecstasies to join the
eternal round.
A share of this celestial transport seemed communicated to me whilst
my eyes wandered over the plain, which appeared to widen and extend in
proportion as the twilight prevailed.
The dusky hour, favourable to conjurations, allowed me to believe the
spirits of departed friends not far removed from the clouds, which, to
all appearance, reposed at the extremity of the prospect, and tinted
the surface of the horizon with ruddy colours. This glow still
lingered upon the verge of the landscape, after the sun disappeared;
and 'twas in those peaceful moments, when no sound but the browsing of
cattle reached me, that I imagined benign looks were cast upon me from
the golden vapours, and I seemed to catch glimpses of faint forms
moving, amongst them, which were once so dear; and even thought my ears
affected by well-known voices, long silent upon earth. When the warm
hues of the sky were gradually fading, and the distant thickets began
to assume a deeper and more melancholy blue, I fancied a shape like
Thisbe {133} shot
swiftly along; and, sometimes halting afar off, cast an affectionate
look upon her old master, that seemed to say, When you draw near the
last inevitable hour, and the pale countries of Aneantsic are stretched
out before you, I will precede your footsteps, and guide them safe
through the wild labyrinths which separate this world from yours. I
was so possessed with the ideas and so full of the remembrance of that
poor, affectionate creature, whose miserable end you were the witness
of, that I did not, for several minutes, perceive our arrival at
Guntsberg. Hurrying to bed, I seemed in my slumbers to pass that
interdicted boundary which divides our earth from the region of Indian
happiness. Thisbe ran nimbly before me; her white form glimmered
amongst dusky forests; she led me into an infinitely spacious plain,
where I heard vast multitudes discoursing upon events to come. What
further passed must never be revealed. I awoke in tears, and could
hardly find spirits enough to look around me, till we were driving
through the midst of Augsburg.
July 21st.—We dined and rambled about this renowned
city till evening. The colossal paintings on the walls of almost every
considerable building gave it a strange air, which pleases upon the
score of novelty.
Having passed a number of streets decorated in this exotic manner, we
found ourselves suddenly before the public hall, by a noble statue of
Augustus, under whose auspices the colony was formed. Which way soever
we turned, our eyes met some remarkable edifice, or marble basin into
which several groups of sculptured river-gods pour a profusion of
waters. These stately fountains and bronze statues, the extraordinary
size and loftiness of the buildings, the towers rising in perspective,
and the Doric portal of the town-house, answered in some measure the
idea Montfaucon gives us of the scene of an ancient tragedy. Whenever
a pompous Flemish painter attempts a representation of Troy, and
displays in his background those streets of palaces described in the
Iliad, Augsburg, or some such city, may easily be traced. Sometimes a
corner of Antwerp discovers itself; and generally, above a Corinthian
portico, rises a Gothic spire. Just such a jumble may be viewed from
the statue of Augustus, under which I remained till the Concierge came,
who was to open the gates of the town-house, and show me its
magnificent hall.
I wished for you exceedingly when, ascending a flight of a hundred
steps, I entered it through a portal, supported by tall pillars and
crowned with a majestic pediment. Upon advancing, I discovered five
more entrances equally grand, with golden figures of guardian genii
leaning over the entablature; and saw, through a range of windows, each
above thirty feet high, and nearly level with the marble pavement, the
whole city, with all its roofs and spires, beneath my feet. The
pillars, cornices, and panels of this striking apartment are uniformly
tinged with brown and gold; and the ceiling, enriched with emblematical
paintings and innumerable canopies of carved work, casts a very
magisterial shade. Upon the whole, I should not be surprised at a
burgomaster assuming a formidable dignity in such a room.
I must confess it had a somewhat similar effect upon me; and I
descended the flight of steps with as much pomposity as if a triumphal
car waited at my feet, or as if on the point of giving audience to the
Queen of Sheba. It happened to be a Saint's day, and half the
inhabitants of Augsburg were gathered together in the opening before
their hall; the greatest numbers, especially the women, still
exhibiting the very identical dresses which Hollar engraved. My lofty
gait imposed upon this primitive assembly, which receded to give me
passage with as much silent respect as if I had really been the wise
sovereign of Israel. When I got home, an execrable supper was served
up to my majesty; I scolded in an unroyal style, and soon convinced
myself I was no longer Solomon.
July 22nd.—Joy to the Electors of Bavaria! for
planting such extensive woods of fir in their dominions as shade over
the chief part of the road from Augsburg to Munich. Near the
last-mentioned city, I cannot boast of the scenery changing to
advantage. Instead of flourishing woods and verdure, we beheld a
parched dreary flat, diversified by fields of withering barley, and
stunted avenues drawn formally across them; now and then a stagnant
pool, and sometimes a dunghill, by way of regale. However, the wild
rocks of the Tyrol terminate the view, and to them imagination may fly,
and walk amidst springs and lilies of her own creation. I speak from
authority, having had the pleasure of anticipating an evening in this
romantic style.
Tuesday next is the grand fair, with horse-races and junketings: a
piece of news I was but too soon acquainted with; for the moment we
entered the town, good-natured creatures from all quarters advised us
to get out of it; since traders and harlequins had filled every corner
of the place, and there was not a lodging to be procured. The inns, to
be sure, were like hives of industrious animals sorting their
merchandise, and preparing their goods for sale. Yet, in spite of
difficulties, we got possession of a quiet apartment.
July 23rd.—We were driven in the evening to Nymphenburg, the
Elector's country palace, whose bosquets, jets-d'eaux, and parterres
are the pride of the Bavarians. The principal platform is all of a
glitter with gilded Cupids and shining serpents spouting at every
pore. Beds of poppies, hollyhocks, scarlet lychnis, and the most
flaming flowers, border the edge of the walks, which extend till the
perspective meets, and swarm with ladies and gentlemen in
parti-coloured raiment. The Queen of Golconda's gardens in a French
opera are scarcely more gaudy and artificial. Unluckily, too, the
evening was fine, and the sun so powerful that we were half roasted
before we could cross the great avenue and enter the thickets, which
barely conceal a very splendid hermitage, where we joined Mr. and Mrs.
T., and a party of fashionable Bavarians.
Amongst the ladies was Madame la Contesse, I forget who, a production
of the venerable Haslang, with her daughter, Madame de —-, who has the
honour of leading the Elector in her chains. These goddesses stepping
into a car, vulgarly called a cariole, the mortals followed, and
explored alley after alley and pavilion after pavilion. Then, having
viewed Pagodenburg, which is, as they told me, all Chinese; and
Marienburg, which is most assuredly all tinsel; we paraded by a variety
of fountains in full squirt, and though they certainly did their best
(for many were set a-going on purpose), I cannot say I greatly admired
them.
The ladies were very gaily attired, and the gentlemen, as smart as
swords, bags, and pretty clothes could make them, looked exactly like
the fine people one sees represented in a coloured print. Thus we kept
walking genteelly about the orangery, till the carriage drew up and
conveyed us to Mr. T's.
Immediately after supper, we drove once more out of town, to a garden
and tea-room, where all degrees and ages dance jovially together till
morning. Whilst one party wheel briskly away in the valz, another
amuse themselves in a corner with cold meat and rhenish. That
despatched, out they whisk amongst the dancers, with an impetuosity and
liveliness I little expected to have found in Bavaria. After turning
round and round, with a rapidity that is quite inconceivable to an
English dancer, the music changes to a slower movement, and then
follows a succession of zig-zag minuets, performed by old and young,
straight and crooked, noble and plebeian, all at once, from one end of
the room to the other. Tallow candles snuffing and stinking, dishes
changing, heads scratching, and all sorts of performances going forward
at the same moment; the flutes, oboes, and bassoons snorting and
grunting with peculiar emphasis; now fast, now slow, just as Variety
commands, who seems to rule the ceremonial of this motley assembly,
where every distinction of rank and privilege is totally forgotten.
Once a week, on Sundays that is to say, the rooms are open, and Monday
is generally somewhat advanced before they are deserted. If good
humour and coarse merriment are all that people desire, here they are
to be found in perfection, though at the expense of toes and noses.
Both these extremities of my person suffered most cruelly; and I was
not sorry to retire about one in the morning to a purer atmosphere.
July 24th.—Custom condemned us to visit the palace,
which glares with looking-glass, gilding, and cut velvet, most
sumptuously fringed and spangled. The chapel, though small, is richer
than anything Crsus ever possessed, let them say what they will. Not a
corner but shines with gold, diamonds, and scraps of martyrdom studded
with jewels. I had the delight of treading amethysts and the richest
gems under foot, which, if you recollect, Apuleius thinks such supreme
felicity. Alas! I was quite unworthy of the honour, and had much
rather have trodden the turf of the mountains. Mammon would never have
taken his eyes off the pavement; mine soon left the contemplation of
it, and fixed on St. Peter's thumb, enshrined with a degree of
elegance, and adorned by some malapert enthusiast with several of the
most delicate antique cameos I ever beheld; the subjects, Ledas and
sleeping Venuses, are a little too pagan, one should think, for an
apostle's finger.
From this precious repository we were conducted through the public
garden to a large hall, where part of the Sleitzom collection is piled
up, till a gallery can be finished for its reception. 'Twas a matter
of great favour to view, in this state, the pieces that compose it,—a
very imperfect one too, since some of the best were under operation.
But I would not upon any account have missed the sight of Rubens's
“Massacre of the Innocents.” Such expressive horrors were never yet
transferred to canvas, and Moloch himself might have gazed at them with
pleasure.
After dinner we were led round the churches; and if you are as much
tired with reading my voluminous descriptions, as I was with the
continual repetition of altars and reliquaries, the Lord have mercy
upon you! However, your delivery draws near. The post is going out,
and to-morrow we shall begin to mount the cliffs of the Tyrol; but
don't be afraid of any long-winded epistles from their summits: I shall
be too well employed in ascending them. Just now, as I have lain by a
long while, I grow sleek, and scribble on in mere wantonness of
spirit. What excesses such a correspondence is capable of, you will
soon be able to judge.
July 25th.—The noise of the people thronging to the
fair did not allow me to slumber very long in the morning. When I got
up, every street was crowded with Jews and mountebanks, holding forth
and driving their bargains in all the energetic vehemence of the German
tongue. Vast quantities of rich merchandise glittered in the shops as
we passed along to the gates. Heaps of fruit and sweetmeats set half
the grandams and infants in the place a-cackling with felicity.
Mighty glad was I to make my escape; and in about an hour or two, we
entered a wild tract of country, not unlike the skirts of a princely
park. A little farther on stands a cluster of cottages, where we
stopped to give our horses some bread, and were pestered with swarms of
flies, most probably journeying to Munich fair, there to feast upon
sugared tarts and bottle-noses.
The next post brought us over hill and dale, grove and meadow, to a
narrow plain, watered by rivulets and surrounded by cliffs, under which
lies scattered the village of Wollrathshausen, consisting of several
cottages, built entirely of fir, with strange galleries hanging over
the way. Nothing can be neater than the carpentry of these simple
edifices, nor more solid than their construction; many of them looked
as if they had braved the torrents which fell from the mountains a
century ago; and, if one may judge from the hoary appearance of the
inhabitants, here are patriarchs who remember the Emperor Lewis of
Bavaria. Orchards of cherry-trees impend from the steeps above the
village, which to our certain knowledge produce no contemptible fruit.
Having refreshed ourselves with their cooling juice, we struck into a
grove of pines, the tallest and most flourishing perhaps we ever
beheld. There seemed no end to these forests, save where little
irregular spots of herbage, fed by cattle, intervened. Whenever we
gained an eminence it was only to discover more ranges of dark wood,
variegated with meadows and glittering streams. White clover and a
profusion of sweet-scented flowers clothe their banks; above, waves the
mountain-ash, glowing with scarlet berries; and beyond, rise hills and
rocks and mountains, piled upon one another, and fringed with fir to
their topmost acclivities. Perhaps the Norwegian forests alone equal
these in grandeur and extent. Those which cover the Swiss highlands
rarely convey such vast ideas. There, the woods climb only half way up
their ascents, and then are circumscribed by snows: here, no boundaries
are set to their progress, and the mountains, from their bases to their
summits, display rich unbroken masses of vegetation.
As we were surveying this prospect, a thick cloud, fraught with
thunder, obscured the transparence of the horizon, whilst flashes
startled our horses, whose snorts and stampings resounded through the
woods. What from the shade of the firs and the impending tempests, we
travelled several miles almost in total darkness. One moment the
clouds began to fleet, and a faint gleam promised serener hours, but
the next all was gloom and terror; presently a deluge of rain poured
down upon the valley, and in a short time the torrents, beginning to
swell, raged with such fury as to be with difficulty forded. Twilight
drew on, just as we had passed the most terrible; then ascending a
steep hill under a mountain, whose pines and birches rustled with the
storm, we saw a little lake below. A deep azure haze veiled its
eastern shore, and lowering vapours concealed the cliffs to the south;
but over its western extremities a few transparent clouds, the remains
of the rays of a struggling sunset, were suspended, which streamed on
the surface of the waters, and tinged with tender pink the brow of a
verdant promontory.
I could not help fixing myself on the banks of the lake for several
minutes, till this apparition was lost, and confounded with the shades
of night. Looking round, I shuddered at a craggy mountain, clothed in
dark forests and almost perpendicular, that was absolutely to be
surmounted before we could arrive at Wallersee. No house, not even a
shed appearing, we were forced to ascend the peak, and penetrate these
awful groves.
Great praise is due to the directors of the roads across them, which,
considering their situation, are wonderfully fine. Mounds of stone
support the passage in some places; and, in others, it is hewn with
incredible labour through the solid rock. Beeches and pines of a
hundred feet high, darken the way with their gigantic branches, casting
a chill around, and diffusing a woody odour. As we advanced, in the
thick shade, amidst the spray of torrents, and heard their loud roar in
the chasm beneath, I could scarcely help thinking myself transported to
the Grande Chartreuse; and began to conceive hopes of once more
beholding St. Bruno.
{140} But, though that venerable father did not vouchsafe an
apparition, or call to me again from the depths of the dells, he
protected his votary from nightly perils, and brought us to the banks
of Wallersee Lake. We saw lights gleam upon its shores, which directed
us to a cottage where we reposed after our toils, and were soon lulled
to sleep by the fall of distant waters.
July 26th.—The sun rose many hours before me, and
when I got up was spangling the surface of the lake, which expands
between steeps of wood, crowned by lofty crags and pinnacles. We had
an opportunity of contemplating this bold assemblage as we travelled on
the banks of the Meer, where it forms a bay sheltered by impending
forests; the water, tinged by their reflection with a deep cerulean,
calm and tranquil. Mountains of pine and beech rising above, close
every outlet; and, no village or spire peeping out of the foliage,
impress an idea of more than European solitude. I could contentedly
have passed a summer's moon in these retirements, hollowed myself a
canoe, and fished for sustenance.
From the shore of Wallersee, our road led us straight through arching
groves, which the axe seems never to have violated, to the summit of a
rock covered with spurge-laurel, and worn by the course of torrents
into innumerable craggy forms. Beneath, lay extended a chaos of
shattered cliffs, with tall pines springing from their crevices, and
rapid streams hurrying between their intermingled trunks and branches.
As yet, no hut appeared, no mill, no bridge, no trace of human
existence.
After a few hours' journey through the wilderness, we began to
discover a wreath of smoke; and presently the cottage from whence it
arose, composed of planks, and reared on the very brink of a
precipice. Piles of cloven spruce-fir were dispersed before the
entrance, on a little spot of verdure browsed by goats; near them sat
an aged man with hoary whiskers, his white locks tucked under a fur
cap. Two or three beautiful children, their hair neatly braided,
played around him; and a young woman, dressed in a short robe and
Polish-looking bonnet, peeped out of a wicket window.
I was so much struck with the exotic appearance of this sequestered
family, that, crossing a rivulet, I clambered up to their cottage and
begged some refreshment. Immediately there was a contention amongst
the children, who should be the first to oblige me. A little
black-eyed girl succeeded, and brought me an earthen jug full of milk,
with crumbled bread, and a platter of strawberries fresh picked from
the bank. I reclined in the midst of my smiling hosts, and spread my
repast on the turf: never could I be waited upon with more hospitable
grace. The only thing I wanted was language to express my gratitude;
and it was this deficiency which made me quit them so soon. The old
man seemed visibly concerned at my departure; and his children followed
me a long way down the rocks, talking in a dialect which passes all
understanding, and waving their hands to bid me adieu.
I had hardly lost sight of them and regained my carriage before we
entered a forest of pines, to all appearance without bounds, of every
age and figure; some, feathered to the ground with flourishing
branches; others, decayed into shapes like Lapland idols. I can
imagine few situations more dreadful than to be lost at night amidst
this confusion of trunks, hollow winds whistling among the branches,
and strewing their cones below. Even at noonday, I thought we should
never have found our way out.
At last, having descended a long avenue, endless perspectives opening
on either side, we emerged into a valley bounded by swelling hills,
divided into agreeable shady inclosures, where many herds were
grazing. A rivulet flows along the pastures beneath; and after winding
through the village of Boidou, loses itself in a narrow pass amongst
the cliffs and precipices which rise above the cultivated slopes, and
frame in this happy pastoral region. All the plain was in sunshine,
the sky blue, and the heights illuminated, except one rugged peak with
spires of rock, shaped not unlike the views I have seen of Sinai, and
wrapped, like that sacred mount, in clouds and darkness. At the base
of this tremendous mass, lies a neat hamlet called Mittenvald,
surrounded by thickets and banks of verdure, and watered by frequent
springs, whose sight and murmurs were so reviving in the midst of a
sultry day, that we could not think of leaving their vicinity, but
remained at Mittenvald the whole evening.
Our inn had long airy galleries, and a pleasant balcony fronting the
mountain. In one of these we dined upon trout fresh from the rills,
and cherries just culled from the orchards that cover the slopes
above. The clouds were dispersing, and the topmost peak half visible,
before we ended our repast. Every moment discovering some inaccessible
cliff or summit, shining through the mists, and tinted by the sun with
pale golden colours. These appearances filled me with such delight and
with such a train of romantic associations, that I left the table and
ran to an open field beyond the huts and gardens, to gaze in solitude
and catch the vision before it dissolved away. You, if any human being
is able, may conceive true ideas of these glowing vapours sailing over
the pointed rocks; and brightening them in their passage with amber
light.
When all were faded and lost in the blue ether, I had time to look
around me and notice the mead in which I was standing. Here, clover
covered its surface; there, crops of grain; further on, beds of herbs
and the sweetest flowers. An amphitheatre of hills and rocks, broken
into a variety of glens and precipices, guards the plain from
intrusion, and opens a course for several clear rivulets, which, after
gurgling amidst loose stones and fragments, fall down the steeps, and
are concealed and quieted in the herbage of the vale.
A cottage or two peep out of the woods that hang over the waterfalls;
and on the brow of the hills above, appears a series of eleven little
chapels, uniformly built. I followed the narrow path that leads to
them, on the edge of the eminences, and met a troop of beautiful
peasants, all of the name of Anna (for it was her saintship's day),
going to pay their devotions, severally, at these neat white fanes.
There were faces that Guercino would not have disdained copying, with
braids of hair the softest and most luxuriant I ever beheld. Some had
wreathed it simply with flowers, other with rolls of a thin linen
(manufactured in the neighbourhood), and disposed it with a degree of
elegance one should not have expected on the cliffs of the Tyrol.
Being arrived, they knelt all together at the first chapel, on the
steps, a minute or two, whispered a short prayer, and then dispersed
each to her fane. Every little building had now its fair worshipper,
and you may well conceive how much such figures, scattered about the
landscape, increased its charms. Notwithstanding the fervour of their
adorations (for at intervals they sighed and beat their white bosoms
with energy), several bewitching profane glances were cast at me as I
passed by. Don't be surprised, then, if I became a convert to idolatry
in so amiable a form, and worshipped St. Anna on the score of her
namesakes.
When got beyond the last chapel, I began to hear the roar of a
cascade in a thick wood of beech and chestnut that clothes the steeps
of a wide fissure in the rock. My ear soon guided me to its entrance,
which was marked by a shed encompassed with mossy fragments, and almost
concealed by bushes of the caper-plant in full red bloom. Amongst
these I struggled, till, reaching a goat-track, it conducted me, on the
brink of the foaming waters, to the very depths of the cliff, whence
issues a stream which dashes impetuously down, strikes against a ledge
of rocks, and sprinkles the impending thicket with dew. Big drops hung
on every spray, and glittered on the leaves partially gilt by the rays
of the declining sun, whose mellow hues softened the summits of the
cliffs, and diffused a repose, a divine calm, over this deep
retirement, which inclined me to imagine it the extremity of the earth,
and the portal of some other region of existence; some happy world
beyond the dark groves of pine, the caves and awful mountains, where
the river takes its source! I hung eagerly on the gulph, impressed
with this idea, and fancied myself listening to a voice that bubbled up
with the waters; then looked into the abyss and strained my eyes to
penetrate its gloom, but all was dark and unfathomable as futurity!
Awakening from my reverie, I felt the damps of the water chill my
forehead, and ran shivering out of the vale to avoid them. A warmer
atmosphere, that reigned in the meads I had wandered across before,
tempted me to remain a good while longer, collecting the wild pinks
with which they are strewed in profusion, and a species of thyme
scented like myrrh. Whilst I was thus employed, a confused murmur
struck my ear, and, on turning towards a cliff, backed by the woods
from whence the sound seemed to proceed, forth issued a herd of goats,
hundreds after hundreds, skipping down the steeps: then followed two
shepherd boys, gamboling together as they drove their creatures along:
soon after, the dog made his appearance, hunting a stray heifer which
brought up the rear. I followed them with my eyes till lost in the
windings of the valley, and heard the tinkling of their bells die
gradually away. Now the last blush of crimson left the summit of
Sinai, inferior mountains being long since cast in deep blue shades.
The village was already hushed when I regained it, and in a few moments
I followed its example.
July 27th.—We pursued our journey to Inspruck,
through the wildest scenes of wood and mountain that were ever
traversed, the rocks now beginning to assume a loftier and more
majestic appearance, and to glisten with snows. I had proposed passing
a day or two at Inspruck, visiting the castle of Ambras, and examining
Count Eysenberg's cabinet, enriched with the rarest productions of the
mineral kingdom, and a complete collection of the moths and flies
peculiar to the Tyrol; but, upon my arrival, the azure of the skies and
the brightness of the sunshine inspired me with an irresistible wish of
hastening to Italy. I was now too near the object of my journey, to
delay possession any longer than absolutely necessary; so, casting a
transient look on Maximilian's tomb, and the bronze statues of Tyrolese
Counts and worthies, solemnly ranged in the church of the Franciscans,
set immediately off.
We crossed a broad noble street, terminated by a triumphal arch, and
were driven along the road to the foot of a mountain waving with fields
of corn, and variegated with wood and vineyards, encircling lawns of
the finest verdure, scattered over with white houses glistening in the
sun. Upon ascending the mount, and beholding a vast range of prospects
of a similar character, I almost repented my impatience, and looked
down with regret upon the cupolas and steeples we were leaving behind.
But the rapid succession of lovely and romantic scenes soon effaced the
former from my memory.
Our road, the smoothest in the world (though hewn in the bosom of
rocks), by its sudden turns and windings, gave us, every instant,
opportunities of discovering new villages, and forests rising beyond
forests; green spots in the midst of wood, high above on the mountains,
and cottages perched on the edge of promontories. Down, far below, in
the chasm, amidst a confusion of pines and fragments of stone, rages
the torrent Inn, which fills the country far and wide with a perpetual
murmur. Sometimes we descended to its brink, and crossed over high
bridges; sometimes mounted half-way up the cliffs, till its roar and
agitation became, through distance, inconsiderable.
After a long ascent, the shades of evening reposing in the valleys,
and the upland snows still tinged with a vivid red, we reached
Schönberg, a village well worthy of its appellation: and then, twilight
drawing over us, began to descend. We could now but faintly discover
the opposite mountains, veined with silver rills, when we came once
more to the banks of the Inn. This turbulent stream accompanied us all
the way to Steinach, and broke by its continual roar the stillness of
the night, which had finished half its course before we were settled to
rest.
July 28th.—I rose early to scent the fragrance of the
vegetation, bathed in a shower which had lately fallen, and looking
around me, saw nothing but crags hanging over crags, and the rocky
shores of the stream, still dark with the shade of the mountains. The
small opening in which Steinach is situated, terminates in a gloomy
strait, scarce leaving room for the road and the torrent, which does
not understand being thwarted, and will force its way, let the pines
grow ever so thick, or the rocks be ever so considerable.
Notwithstanding the forbidding air of this narrow dell, Industry has
contrived to enliven its steeps with habitations, to raise water by
means of a wheel, and to cover the surface of the rocks with soil. By
this means large crops of oats and flax are produced, and most of the
huts have gardens adjoining, which are filled with poppies, seeming to
thrive in this parched situation.
“Urit enim lini campum seges, urit avenæ,
Urunt Lethæo perfusa papavera somno.”
The farther we advanced in the dell, the larger were the plantations
which discovered themselves. For what purpose these gaudy flowers meet
with such encouragement, I had neither time nor language to inquire;
the mountaineers stuttering a gibberish unintelligible even to
Germans. Probably opium is extracted from them; or, perhaps, if you
love a conjecture, Morpheus has transferred his abode from the
Cimmerians, and has perceived a cavern somewhere or other in the
recesses of these endless mountains. Poppies, you know, in poetic
travels, always denote the skirts of his soporific reign, and I don't
remember a region better calculated for undisturbed repose than the
narrow clefts and gullies which run up amongst these rocks, lost in
vapours impervious to the sun, and moistened by rills and showers,
whose continual tricklings inspire a drowsiness not easily to be
resisted. Add to these circumstances the waving of the pines, with the
hum of bees seeking their food in the crevices, and you will have as
sleepy a region as that in which Spenser and Ariosto have placed the
nodding deity.
At present, I must confess, I should not dislike submitting to his
empire, for a few months or years, just as it might happen, whilst
Europe is distracted by demons of revenge and war; whilst they are
strangling at Venice, and tearing each other to pieces in unhappy
London; whilst Etna and Vesuvius give signs of uncommon wrath; America
welters in her blood; and almost every quarter of the globe is filled
with carnage and devastation. This is the moment to humble ourselves
before the God of Sleep; to beseech him to open his dusky portals; and
admit us into the repose of his retired kingdom. If you are inclined
to become a suppliant, hasten to the Tyrol, and we will search together
about the mountains, traverse the poppy-meads, and look into every
chasm and fissure that excludes daylight, in hopes of discovering the
mansion of repose. Then when we have found this corner (or I think our
search will be successful) Morpheus will give us an approving nod, and
beckon us in silence to couch, where, soon lulled by the murmurs of the
place, we shall sink into oblivion and tranquillity. But we may as
well keep our eyes open for the present, till we have made this
important discovery, and look at the beautiful country round Brixen,
whither I arrived in the cool of the evening, and breathed the
freshness of a garden, immediately beneath my window. The thrushes,
warbling amongst its shades, saluted me, the moment I awoke next
morning.
July 29th.—We proceeded over fertile mountains to
Bolsano. Here first I noticed the rocks cut into terraces, thick set
with melons and Indian corn; gardens of fig-trees and pomegranates
hanging over walls, clustered with fruit; amidst them, a little
pleasant cot, shaded by cypresses. In the evening we perceived several
further indications of approaching Italy; and after sunset the Adige,
rolling its full tide between precipices, which looked awful in the
dusk. Myriads of fire-flies sparkled amongst the shrubs on the bank.
I traced the course of these exotic insects by their blue light, now
rising to the summits of the trees, now sinking to the ground and
associating with vulgar glow-worms. We had opportunities enough to
remark their progress, since we travelled all night; such being my
impatience to reach the promised land!
Morning dawned just as we saw Trent dimly before us. I slept a few
hours, then set out again (July 30th), after the heats were in some
degree abated, and leaving Bergine, where the peasants were feasting
before their doors, in their holiday dresses, with red pinks stuck in
their ears instead of rings, and their necks surrounded with coral of
the same colour, we came through a woody valley to the banks of a lake,
filled with the purest and most transparent water, which loses itself
in shady creeks, amongst hills robed with verdure from their bases to
their summits.
The shores present one continual shrubbery, interspersed with knots
of larches and slender almonds, starting from the underwood. A cornice
of rock runs round the whole, except where the trees descend to the
very brink, and dip their boughs in the water.
It was five o'clock when I caught the sight of this unsuspected lake,
and the evening shadows stretched nearly across it. Gaining a very
rapid ascent, we looked down upon its placid bosom, and saw several
airy peaks rising above the tufted foliage of the groves around. I
quitted the contemplation of them with regret, and, in a few hours,
arrived at Borgo di Volsugano, the scenes of the lake still present
before the eye of my fancy.
July 31st.—My heart beat quick when I saw some hills,
not very distant, which I was told lay in the Venetian State, and I
thought an age, at least, had elapsed before we were passing their
base. The road was never formed to delight an impatient traveller;
loose pebbles and rolling stones render it, in the highest degree,
tedious and jolting. I should not have spared my execrations, had it
not traversed a picturesque valley, overgrown with juniper, and strewed
with fragments of rock, precipitated, long since, from the surrounding
eminences, blooming with cyclamens.
I clambered up several of these crags,
“fra gli odoriferi ginepri,”
to gather the flowers I have just mentioned, and found them
deliciously scented. Fratillarias, and the most gorgeous flies, many
of which I here noticed for the first time, were fluttering about and
expanding their wings to the sun. There is no describing the numbers I
beheld, nor their gaily varied colouring. I could not find in my heart
to destroy their felicity; to scatter their bright plumage and snatch
them for ever from the realms of light and flowers. Had I been less
compassionate, I should have gained credit with that respectable corps,
the torturers of butterflies; and might, perhaps, have enriched their
cabinets with some unknown captives. However, I left them imbibing the
dews of heaven, in free possession of their native rights; and having
changed horses at Tremolano, entered at length my long-desired Italy.
The pass is rocky and tremendous, guarded by a fortress (Covalo), in
possession of the Empress Queen, and only fit, one should think, to be
inhabited by her eagles. There is no attaining this exalted hold but
by the means of a cord let down many fathoms by the soldiers, who live
in dens and caverns, which serve also as arsenals, and magazines for
powder; whose mysteries I declined prying into, their approach being a
little too aërial for my earthly frame. A black vapour, tinging their
entrance, completed the terror of the prospect, which I shall never
forget.
For two or three leagues it continued much in the same style; cliffs,
nearly perpendicular, on both sides, and the Brenta foaming and
thundering below. Beyond, the rocks began to be mantled with vines and
gardens. Here and there a cottage shaded with mulberries made its
appearance, and we often discovered, on the banks of the river, ranges
of white buildings, with courts and awnings, beneath which vast numbers
were employed in manufacturing silk. As we advanced, the stream
gradually widened, and the rocks receded; woods were more frequent and
cottages thicker strown.
About five in the evening, we had left the country of crags and
precipices, of mists and cataracts, and were entering the fertile
territory of the Bassanese. It was now I beheld groves of olives, and
vines clustering the summits of the tallest elms; pomegranates in every
garden, and vases of citron and orange before almost every door. The
softness and transparency of the air soon told me I was arrived in
happier climates; and I felt sensations of joy and novelty run through
my veins, upon beholding this smiling land of groves and verdure
stretched out before me. A few glooming vapours, I can hardly call
them clouds, rested upon the extremities of the landscape; and, through
their medium, the sun cast an oblique and dewy ray. Peasants were
returning homeward from the cultivated hillocks and corn-fields,
singing as they went, and calling to each other over the hills; whilst
the women were milking goats before the wickets of the cottages, and
preparing their country fare.
I left them enjoying it, and soon beheld the ancient ramparts and
cypresses of Bassano; whose classic appearance recalled the memory of
former times, and answered exactly the ideas I had pictured to myself
of Italian edifices. Though encompassed by walls and turrets, neither
soldiers nor custom-house officers start out from their concealment, to
question and molest a weary traveller, for such are the blessings of
the Venetian State, at least of the Terra Firma provinces, that it does
not contain, I believe, above four regiments. Istria, Dalmatia, and
the maritime frontiers, are more formidably guarded, as they touch, you
know, the whiskers of the Turkish empire.
Passing under a Doric gateway, we crossed the chief part of the town
in the way to our locanda, pleasantly situated, and commanding a level
green, where people walk and eat ices by moonlight. On the right, the
Franciscan church and convent, half hid in the religious gloom of pine
and cypress; to the left, a perspective of walls and towers rising from
the turf, and marking it, when I arrived, with long shadows; in front,
where the lawn terminates, meadow, wood, and garden run quite to the
base of the mountains.
Twilight coming on, this beautiful spot swarmed with people, sitting
in circles upon the grass, refreshing themselves with cooling liquors
or lounging upon the bank beneath the towers. They looked so free and
happy that I longed to be acquainted with them; and by the
interposition of a polite Venetian (who, though a perfect stranger,
showed me the most engaging marks of attention), was introduced to a
group of the principal inhabitants. Our conversation ended in a
promise to meet the next evening at a country house about a league from
Bassano, and then to return together and sing to the praise of
Pacchierotti, their idol, as well as mine.
You can have no idea what pleasure we mutually found in being of the
same faith, and believing in one singer; nor can you imagine what
effects that musical divinity produced at Padua, where he performed a
few years ago, and threw his audience into such raptures, that it was
some time before they recovered. One in particular, a lady of
distinction, fainted away the instant she caught the pathetic accents
of his voice, and was near dying a martyr to its melody. La Contessa
Roberti, who sings in the truest taste, gave me a detail of the whole
affair. “Egli ha fatto veramente un fanatismo a Padua,” was her
expression. I assured her we were not without idolatry in England,
upon his account; but that in this, as well as in other articles of
belief, there were many abominable heretics.
August 1st.—The whole morning not a soul stirred who
could avoid it. Those who were so active and lively the night before,
were now stretched languidly upon their couches. Being to the full as
idly disposed, I sat down and wrote some of this dreaming epistle; then
feasted upon figs and melons; then got under the shade of the cypress,
and slumbered till evening, only waking to dine, and take some ice.
The sun declining apace, I hastened to my engagement at Mosolente
(for so is the villa called), placed on a verdant hill encircled by
others as lovely, and consisting of three light pavilions connected by
porticos: just such as we admire in the fairy scenes of an opera. A
vast flight of steps leads to the summit, where Signora Roberti and her
friends received me with a grace and politeness that can never want a
place in my memory. We rambled over all the apartments of this
agreeable edifice, characterised by airiness and simplicity. The
pavement incrusted with a composition as cool and polished as marble;
the windows, doors, and balconies adorned with silvered, iron work,
commanding scenes of meads and woodlands that extend to the shores of
the Adriatic; spires and cypresses rising above the levels; and the
hazy mountains beyond Padua, diversifying the expanse, form altogether
a landscape which the elegant imagination of Horizonti never exceeded.
Beyond the villa, a tumble of hillocks present themselves in a variety
of forms, with dips and hollows between, scattered over with leafy
trees and vines dangling in continued garlands.
I gazed on this rural view till it faded in the dusk; then returning
to Bassano, repaired to an illuminated hall, and had the felicity of
hearing La Signora Roberti sing the very air which had excited such
transport at Padua. As soon as she had ended, and that I could hear no
more those affecting sounds, which had held me silent and almost
breathless for several moments, a band of various instruments stationed
in the open street began a lively symphony, which would have delighted
me at any other time; but now, I wished them a thousand leagues away,
so melancholy an impression did the air I had been listening to leave
on my mind.
At midnight I took leave of my obliging hosts, who were just setting
out for Padua. They gave me a thousand kind invitations, and I hope
some future day to accept them.
August 2nd.—Our route to Venice lay winding about the
variegated plains I had surveyed from Mosolente; and after dining at
Treviso we came in two hours and a half to Mestre, between grand villas
and gardens peopled with statues. Embarking our baggage at the
last-mentioned place, we stepped into a gondola, whose even motion was
very agreeable after the jolts of a chaise. Stretched beneath the
awning, I enjoyed at my ease the freshness of the gales, and the sight
of the waters. We were soon out of the canal of Mestre, terminated by
an isle which contains a cell dedicated to the Holy Virgin, peeping out
of a thicket from whence spire up two tall cypresses. Its bells
tingled as we passed along and dropped some paolis into a net tied at
the end of a pole stretched out to us for that purpose.
As soon as we had doubled the cape of this diminutive island, an
azure expanse of sea opened to our view, the domes and towers of Venice
rising from its bosom. Now we began to distinguish Murano, St.
Michele, St. Giorgio in Alga, and several other islands, detached from
the grand cluster, which I hailed as old acquaintances; innumerable
prints and drawings having long since made their shapes familiar.
Still gliding forward, the sun casting his last gleams across the
waves, and reddening the different towers, we every moment
distinguished some new church or palace in the city, suffused with the
evening rays, and reflected with all their glow of colouring from the
surface of the waters.
The air was still; the sky cloudless; a faint wind just breathing
upon the deep, lightly bore its surface against the steps of a chapel
in the island of Saint Secondo, and waved the veil before its portal,
as we rowed by and coasted the walls of its garden, overhung with
fig-trees and topped with Italian pines. The convent discovers itself
through their branches, built in a style somewhat morisco, and level
with the sea, except where the garden intervenes.
Here, meditation may indulge her reveries in the midst of the surges,
and walk in cloisters, alone vocal with the whispers of the pine. I
passed this consecrated spot soon after sunset, when daylight was
expiring in the west, and when the distant woods of Fusina were lost in
the haze of the horizon.
We were now drawing very near the city, and a confused hum began to
interrupt the evening stillness; gondolas were continually passing and
repassing, and the entrance of the Canal Reggio, with all its stir and
bustle, lay before us. Our gondoliers turned with much address through
a crowd of boats and barges that blocked up the way, and rowed smoothly
by the side of a broad pavement, covered with people in all dresses and
of all nations.
Leaving the Palazzo Pesaro, a noble structure with two rows of
arcades and a superb rustic, behind, we were soon landed before the
Leon Bianco, which being situated in one of the broadest parts of the
grand canal, commands a most striking assemblage of buildings. I have
no terms to describe the variety of pillars, of pediments, of
mouldings, and cornices, some Grecian, others Saracenical, that adorn
these edifices, of which the pencil of Canaletti conveys so perfect an
idea as to render all verbal description superfluous. At one end of
this grand perspective appears the Rialto; the sweep of the canal
conceals the other.
The rooms of our hotel are as spacious and cheerful as I could
desire; a lofty hall, or rather gallery, painted with grotesque in a
very good style, perfectly clean, floored with the stucco composition I
have mentioned above, divides the house, and admits a refreshing
current of air. Several windows near the ceiling look into this vast
apartment, which serves in lieu of a court, and is rendered perfectly
luminous by a glazed arcade, thrown open to catch the breezes. Through
it I passed to a balcony which impends over the canal, and is twined
round with plants forming a green festoon springing from two large
vases of orange-trees placed at each end. Here I established myself to
enjoy the cool, and observe, as well as the dusk would permit, the
variety of figures shooting by in their gondolas.
As night approached, innumerable tapers glimmered through the awnings
before the windows. Every boat had its lantern, and the gondolas
moving rapidly along were followed by tracks of light, which gleamed
and played upon the waters. I was gazing at these dancing fires when
the sounds of music were wafted along the canals, and as they grew
louder and louder, an illuminated barge, filled with musicians, issued
from the Rialto, and stopping under one of the palaces, began a
serenade, which was clamorous and suspended all conversation in the
galleries and porticos; till, rowing slowly away, it was heard no
more. The gondoliers catching the air, imitated its cadences, and were
answered by others at a distance, whose voices, echoed by the arch of
the bridge, acquired a plaintive and interesting tone. I retired to
rest, full of the sound; and long after I was asleep, the melody seemed
to vibrate in my ear.
August 3rd.—It was not five o'clock before I was
aroused by a loud din of voices and splashing of water under my
balcony. Looking out, I beheld the grand canal so entirely covered
with fruits and vegetables, on rafts and in barges, that I could
scarcely distinguish a wave. Loads of grapes, peaches, and melons
arrived, and disappeared in an instant, for every vessel was in motion;
and the crowds of purchasers hurrying from boat to boat, formed one of
the liveliest pictures imaginable. Amongst the multitudes, I remarked
a good many whose dress and carriage announced something above the
common rank; and upon inquiry I found they were noble Venetians, just
come from their casinos, and met to refresh themselves with fruit,
before they retired to sleep for the day.
Whilst I was observing them, the sun began to colour the balustrades
of the palaces, and the pure exhilarating air of the morning drawing me
abroad, I procured a gondola, laid in my provision of bread and grapes,
and was rowed under the Rialto, down the grand canal, to the marble
steps of S. Maria della Salute, erected by the Senate in performance of
a vow to the Holy Virgin, who begged off a terrible pestilence in
1630. I gazed, delighted with its superb frontispiece and dome,
relieved by a clear blue sky. To criticize columns or pediments of the
different façades, would be time lost; since one glance upon the worst
view that has been taken of them, conveys a far better idea than the
most elaborate description. The great bronze portal opened whilst I
was standing on the steps which lead to it, and discovered the interior
of the dome, where I expatiated in solitude; no mortal appearing except
an old priest who trimmed the lamps, and muttered a prayer before the
high altar, still wrapped in shadows. The sunbeams began to strike
against the windows of the cupola just as I left the church, and was
wafted across the waves to the spacious platform in front of St.
Giorgio Maggiore, by far the most perfect and beautiful edifice my eyes
ever beheld.
When my first transport was a little subsided, and I had examined the
graceful design of each particular ornament, and united the just
proportion and grand effect of the whole in my mind, I planted my
umbrella on the margin of the sea, and reclining under its shade, my
feet dangling over the waters, viewed the vast range of palaces, of
porticos, of towers, opening on every side and extending out of sight.
The Doge's residence and the tall columns at the entrance of the place
of St. Mark, form, together with the arcades of the public library, the
lofty Campanile and the cupolas of the ducal church, one of the most
striking groups of buildings that art can boast of. To behold at one
glance these stately fabrics, so illustrious in the records of former
ages, before which, in the flourishing times of the republic, so many
valiant chiefs and princes have landed, loaded with the spoils of
different nations, was a spectacle I had long and ardently desired. I
thought of the days of Frederic Barbarossa, when looking up the piazza
of St. Mark, along which he marched in solemn procession, to cast
himself at the feet of Alexander the Third, and pay a tardy homage to
St. Peter's successor. Here were no longer those splendid fleets that
attended his progress; one solitary galeass was all I beheld, anchored
opposite the palace of the Doge, and surrounded by crowds of gondolas,
whose sable hues contrasted strongly with its vermilion oars and
shining ornaments. A party-coloured multitude was continually shifting
from one side of the piazza to the other; whilst senators and
magistrates in long black robes were already arriving to fill their
respective charges.
I contemplated the busy scene from my peaceful platform, where
nothing stirred but aged devotees creeping to their devotions; and,
whilst I remained thus calm and tranquil, heard the distant buzz and
rumour of the town. Fortunately a length of waves rolled between me
and its tumults; so that I ate my grapes, and read Metastasio,
undisturbed by officiousness or curiosity. When the sun became too
powerful, I entered the nave, and applauded the genius of Palladio.
After I had admired the masterly structure of the roof and the
lightness of its arches, my eyes naturally directed themselves to the
pavement of white and ruddy marble, polished, and reflecting like a
mirror the columns which rise from it. Over this I walked to a door
that admitted me into the principal quadrangle of the convent,
surrounded by a cloister supported on Ionic pillars, beautifully
proportioned. A flight of stairs opens into the court, adorned with
balustrades and pedestals, sculptured with elegance truly Grecian.
This brought me to the refectory, where the chef-d'uvre of Paul
Veronese, representing the marriage of Cana in Galilee, was the first
object that presented itself. I never beheld so gorgeous a group of
wedding garments before; there is every variety of fold and plait that
can possibly be imagined. The attitudes and countenances are more
uniform, and the guests appear a very genteel, decent sort of people,
well used to the mode of their times and accustomed to miracles.
Having examined this fictitious repast, I cast a look on a long range
of tables covered with very excellent realities, which the monks were
coming to devour with energy, if one might judge from their
appearance. These sons of penitence and mortification possess one of
the most spacious islands of the whole cluster, a princely habitation,
with gardens and open porticos, that engross every breath of air; and,
what adds not a little to the charms of their abode, is the liberty of
making excursions from it, whenever they have a mind.
The republic, wisely jealous of ecclesiastical influence, connives at
these amusing rambles, and, by encouraging the liberty of monks and
churchmen, prevents their appearing too sacred and important in the
eyes of the people, who have frequent proofs of their being mere flesh
and blood, and that of the frailest composition. Had the rest of Italy
been of the same opinion, and profited as much by Fra Paolo's maxims,
some of its fairest fields would not, at this moment, lie uncultivated,
and its ancient spirit might have revived. However, I can scarcely
think the moment far distant, when it will assert its natural
prerogatives, awake from its ignoble slumber, and look back upon the
tiara, with all its host of idle fears and scaring phantoms, as the
offspring of a distempered dream. Scarce a sovereign supports any
longer this vain illusion, except the old woman of Hungary, and as soon
as her dim eyes are closed we shall probably witness great events.
{156}
Full of prophecies and bodings, I moved slowly out of the cloisters;
and, gaining my gondola, arrived, I know not how, at the flights of
steps which lead to the Redenptore, a structure so simple and elegant,
that I thought myself entering an antique temple, and looked about for
the statue of the God of Delphi, or some other graceful divinity. A
huge crucifix of bronze soon brought me to times present.
The charm being thus dissolved, I began to perceive the shapes of
rueful martyrs peeping out of the niches around, and the bushy beards
of Capuchin friars wagging before the altars. These good fathers had
decorated their church, according to custom, with orange and citron
trees, placed between the pilasters of the arcades; and on grand
festivals, it seems, they turn the whole church into a bower, strew the
pavement with leaves, and festoon the dome with flowers.
I left them occupied with their plants and their devotions. It was
midday, and I begged to be rowed to some woody island, where I might
dine in shade and tranquillity. My gondoliers shot off in an instant;
but, though they went at a very rapid rate, I wished to fly faster, and
getting into a bark with six oars, swept along the waters, soon left
the Zecca and San Marco behind; and, launching into the plains of
shining sea, saw turret after turret, and isle after isle, fleeting
before me. A pale greenish light ran along the shores of the distant
continent, whose mountains seemed to catch the motion of my boat, and
to fly with equal celerity.
I had not much time to contemplate the beautiful effects on the
waters—the emerald and purple hues which gleamed along their
surface. Our prow struck, foaming, against the walls of the Carthusian
garden, before I recollected where I was, or could look attentively
around me. Permission being obtained, I entered this cool retirement,
and putting aside with my hands the boughs of fig-trees and
pomegranates, got under an ancient bay, near which several tall pines
lift themselves up to the breezes. I listened to the conversation they
held, with a wind just flown from Greece, and charged, as well as I
could understand this airy language, with many affectionate
remembrances from their relations on Mount Ida.
I reposed amidst bay leaves, fanned by a constant air, till it
pleased the fathers to send me some provisions, with a basket of fruit
and wine. Two of them would wait upon me, and ask ten thousand
questions about Lord George Gordon, and the American war. I, who was
deeply engaged with the winds, and fancied myself hearing these rapid
travellers relate their adventures, wished my interrogators in
purgatory, and pleaded ignorance of the Italian language. This
circumstance extricated me from my difficulties, and procured me a long
interval of repose.
The rustling of the pines had the same effect as the murmurs of other
old story-tellers, and I slept undisturbed till the people without, in
the boat (who wondered not a little, I dare say, what the deuce was
become of me within), began a sort of chorus in parts, full of such
plaintive modulation, that I still thought myself under the influence
of a dream, and, half in this world and half in the other, believed,
like the heroes of Fingal, that I had caught the music of the spirits
of the hill.
When I was thoroughly convinced of the reality of these sounds, I
moved towards the shore from whence they proceeded: a glassy sea lay
full before me; no gale ruffled the expanse; every breath was subsided,
and I beheld the sun go down in all its sacred calm. You have
experienced the sensations this moment inspires; imagine what they must
have been in such a scene, and accompanied with a melody so simple and
pathetic. I stepped into my boat, and instead of encouraging the speed
of the gondoliers, begged them to abate their ardour, and row me lazily
home. They complied, and we were near an hour reaching the platform
before the ducal palace, thronged as usual with a variety of nations.
I mixed a moment with the crowd; then directed my steps to the great
mosque,—I ought to say the church of St. Mark; but really its
cupolas, slender pinnacles, and semicircular arches, have so oriental
an appearance, as to excuse this appellation. I looked a moment at the
four stately coursers of bronze and gold that adorn the chief portal,
and then took in, at one glance, the whole extent of the square, with
its towers and standards. So noble an assemblage never met my eyes. I
envied the good fortune of Petrarch, who describes, in one of his
letters, a tournament held in this princely opening.
Many are the festivals which have been here celebrated. When Henry
the Third left Poland to mount the throne of France, he passed through
Venice, and found the republic waiting to receive him in their famous
square, which by means of an awning stretched from the balustrades of
opposite palaces, was metamorphosed into a vast saloon, sparkling with
artificial stars, and spread with the richest carpets of the East.
What a magnificent idea! The ancient Romans, in the zenith of power
and luxury, never conceived a greater. It is to them the Venetians are
indebted for the hint, since we read of the Coliseo and Pompey's
theatre being sometimes covered with transparent canvas, to defend the
spectators from the heat or sudden rain, and to tint the scene with
soft agreeable colours, like the hues of the declining sun.
Having enjoyed the general perspective of the piazza, I began to
enter into particulars, and examine the bronze pedestals of the three
standards before the great church, designed by Sansovino in the true
spirit of the antique, and covered with relievos, at the same time bold
and elegant. It is also to this celebrated architect we are indebted
for the stately façade of the Proccuratie nuove, which forms one side
of the square, and presents an uninterrupted series of arcades and
marble columns exquisitely wrought. Opposite this magnificent range
appears another line of palaces, whose architecture, though far removed
from the Grecian purity of Sansovino, impresses veneration, and
completes the pomp of the view.
There is something strange and singular in the tower, which rises
distinct from the smooth pavement of the square, a little to the left
as you stand before the chief entrance of St. Mark's. The design is
rather barbarous, and terminates in uncouth and heavy pyramids; yet in
spite of these defects it struck me with awe. A beautiful building
called the Loggetta, and which serves as a guard-house during the
convocation of the grand council, decorates its base. Nothing can be
more enriched, more finished than this structure; which, though far
from diminutive, is in a manner lost at the foot of the Campanile.
This enormous mass seems to promise a very long duration, and will
probably carry down the fame of St. Mark and his Lion to the latest
posterity. Both appear in great state towards its summit, and have
nothing superior, but an archangel perched on the topmost pinnacle, and
pointing to the skies. The dusk prevented my remarking the various
sculptures with which the Loggetta is crowded.
Crossing the ample space between this elegant edifice and the ducal
palace, I passed through a labyrinth of pillars and entered the
principal court, of which nothing but the great outline was visible at
so late an hour. Two reservoirs of bronze, rich with sculptured
foliage, diversify the area. In front a magnificent flight of steps
presents itself, by which the senators ascend through vast and solemn
corridors, which lead to the interior of the edifice. The colossal
statues of Mars and Neptune guard the entrance, and have given the
appellation of scala dei geganti to the steps below, which I
mounted not without respect; and, leaning against the balustrades,
formed like the rest of the building of the rarest marbles, adored the
tutelary divinities.
My devotions were shortly interrupted by one of the sbirri, or
officers of police, who take their stands after sunset before the
avenues of the palace, and who told me the gates were upon the point of
being closed. So, hurrying down the steps, I left half my vows unpaid
and a million of delicate sculptures unexplored; for every pilaster,
every frieze, every entablature, is incrusted with porphyry, verde
antique, or some other curious marble, carved into as many grotesque
wreaths and mouldings as we admire in the loggios of Raffaello. The
various portals, the strange projections, the length of cloisters; in
short, the noble irregularity of these imperial piles, delighted me
beyond idea; and I was sorry to be forced to abandon them so soon,
especially as the twilight, which bats and owls love not better than I
do, enlarged every portico, lengthened every colonnade, and increased
the dimensions of the whole, just as imagination desired. This faculty
would have had full scope had I but remained an hour longer. The moon
would then have gleamed upon the gigantic forms of Mars and Neptune,
and discovered the statues of ancient heroes emerging from the gloom of
their niches.
Such an interesting assemblage of objects, such regal scenery, with
the reflection that half their ornaments once contributed to the
decoration of Athens, transported me beyond myself. The sbirri thought
me distracted. True enough, I was stalking proudly about like an actor
in an ancient Grecian tragedy, lifting up his hands to the consecrated
fanes and images around, expecting the reply of his attendant chorus,
and declaiming the first verses of dipus Tyrannus.
These fits of enthusiasm were hardly subsided, when I issued from the
gates of the palace into the great square, which received a faint gleam
from its casinos and palaces, just beginning to be lighted up, and
become the resort of pleasure and dissipation. Numbers were walking in
parties upon the pavement; some sought the shade of the porticos with
their favourites; others were earnestly engaged in conversation, and
filled the gay illuminated apartments, where they resorted to drink
coffee and sorbet, with laughter and merriment. A thoughtless giddy
transport prevailed; for, at this hour, anything like restraint seems
perfectly out of the question; and however solemn a magistrate or
senator may appear in the day, at night he lays up wig and robe and
gravity to sleep together, runs intriguing about in his gondola, takes
the reigning sultana under his arm, and so rambles half over the town,
which grows gayer and gayer as the day declines.
Many of the noble Venetians have a little suite of apartments in some
out-of-the-way corner, near the grand piazza, of which their families
are totally ignorant. To these they skulk in the dusk, and revel
undisturbed with the companions of their pleasures. Jealousy itself
cannot discover the alleys, the winding passages, the unsuspected
doors, by which these retreats are accessible. Many an unhappy lover,
whose mistress disappears on a sudden with some fortunate rival, has
searched for her haunts in vain. The gondoliers themselves, though the
prime managers of intrigue, are scarce ever acquainted with these
interior cabinets. When a gallant has a mind to pursue his adventures
with mystery, he rows to the piazza, orders his bark to wait, meets his
goddess in the crowd, and vanishes from all beholders. Surely, Venice
is the city in the universe best calculated for giving scope to the
observations of a devil upon two sticks. What a variety of
lurking-places would one stroke of his crutch uncover!
Whilst the higher ranks were solacing themselves in their casinos,
the rabble were gathered in knots round the strollers and mountebanks,
singing and scaramouching in the middle of the square. I observed a
great number of Orientals amongst the crowd, and heard Turkish and
Arabic muttering in every corner. There the Sclavonian dialect
predominated; there some Grecian jargon, almost unintelligible. Had
St. Mark's church been the wondrous tower, and its piazza the chief
square, of the city of Babylon, there could scarcely have been a
greater confusion of languages.
The novelty of the scene afforded me no small share of amusement, and
I wandered about from group to group, and from one strange exotic to
another, asking and being asked innumerable ridiculous questions, and
settling the politics of London and Constantinople, almost in the same
breath. This instant, I found myself in a circle of grave Armenian
priests and jewellers; the next amongst Greeks and Dalmatians, who
accosted me with the smoothest compliments, and gave proof that their
reputation for pliability and address was not ill-founded.
I was entering into a grand harum-scarum discourse with some Russian
Counts or Princes, or whatever you please, just landed with dwarfs, and
footmen, and governors, and staring, like me, about them, when Mad. de
R. arrived, to whom I had the happiness of being recommended. She very
obligingly presented me to some of the most distinguished of the
Venetian families at their great casino, which looks into the piazza,
and consists of five or six rooms, fitted up in a gay flimsy taste,
neither rich nor elegant, where were a great many lights, and a great
many ladies negligently dressed, their hair falling very freely about
them, and innumerable adventures written in their eyes. The gentlemen
were lolling upon the sofas or lounging about the apartments.
The whole assembly seemed upon the verge of gaping, till coffee was
carried round. This magic beverage diffused a temporary animation;
and, for a moment or two, conversation moved on with a degree of
pleasing extravagance; but the flash was soon dissipated, and nothing
remained save cards and stupidity.
In the intervals of shuffling and dealing, some talked over the
affairs of the grand council with less reserve than I expected; and two
or three of them asked some feeble questions about the late tumults in
London: as much, however, through indolence and forgetfulness, I should
conjecture, as from any political motive, for I don't believe all those
wise stories, which some travellers have propagated, of Venetian
subtlety and profound silence. They might have reigned during the dark
periods of the republic, but at this moment the veil is rent in fifty
places; and without any wonderful penetration, the debates of the
senate are discoverable. There doubtless was a time when, society
being greatly divided, and little communication subsisting among the
nobles, secrets were invariably kept; but since the establishment of
casinos, which the ladies rule, where chit-chat and tittle-tattle are
for ever going forwards, who can preserve a rigorous taciturnity upon
any subject in the universe? It was one o'clock before all the company
were assembled, and I left them at three, still dreaming over their
coffee and card-tables. Trieze is their favourite game: uno,
due, tre, quatro, cinque, fante,
cavallo are eternally repeated; the apartments echoed no other
sound.
No lively people could endure such monotony; yet I have been told the
Venetians are remarkably spirited, and so eager in the pursuit of
amusement as hardly to allow themselves any sleep. Some, for instance,
after declaiming in the Senate, walking an hour in the square, and
fidgeting about from one casino to another till morning dawns, will get
into a gondola, row across the Lagunes, take the post to Mestre or
Fusina, and jumble over craggy pavements to Treviso, breakfast in
haste, and rattle back again as if the devil were charioteer: by eleven
the party is restored to Venice, resumes robe and periwig, and goes to
council.
This may be very true, and yet I will never cite the Venetians as
examples of vivacity. Their nerves, unstrung by disease and the
consequences of early debaucheries, impede all lively flow of spirits
in its course, and permit at best but a few moments of a false and
feverish activity. The approaches of rest, forced back by an
immoderate use of coffee, render them, too, weak and listless, and the
facility of being wafted from place to place in a gondola, adds not a
little to their indolence. In short, I can scarcely regard their
Eastern neighbours in a more lazy light; and am apt to imagine that
instead of slumbering less than other people, they pass their lives in
one perpetual doze.
August 4th.—The heats were so excessive in the night,
that I thought myself several times on the point of suffocation, tossed
about like a wounded fish, and dreamt of the devil and Senegal.
Towards sunrise, a faint breeze restored me to life and reason. I
slumbered till late in the day, and the moment I was fairly awake,
ordered my gondolier to row out to the main ocean, that I might plunge
into its waves, and hear and see nothing but waters around me.
We shot off, wound amongst a number of sheds, shops, churches,
casinos, and palaces, growing immediately out of the canals, without
any apparent foundation. No quay, no terrace, not even a slab is to be
seen before the doors; one step brings you from the hall into the bark,
and the vestibules of the stateliest structures lie open to the waters,
and level with them. I observed several, as I glided along, supported
by rows of well-proportioned pillars, adorned with terms and vases,
beyond which the eye generally discovers a grand court, and sometimes a
garden.
In about half an hour, we had left the thickest cluster of isles
behind, and, coasting the Place of St. Mark opposite to San Giorgio
Maggiore, whose elegant frontispiece was painted on the calm waters,
launched into the blue expanse of sea, from which rise the Chartreuse
and two or three other woody islands. I hailed the spot where I had
passed such a happy visionary evening, and nodded to my friends the
pines.
A few minutes more brought me to a dreary, sun-burnt shore, stalked
over by a few Sclavonian soldiers, who inhabit a castle hard by, go
regularly to an ugly unfinished church, and from thence, it is to be
hoped, to paradise; as the air of their barracks is abominable, and
kills them like blasted sheep.
Forlorn as this island appeared to me, I was told it was the scene of
the Doge's pageantry at the feast of the Ascension; and the very spot
to which he sails in the Bucentaur, previously to wedding the
sea. You have heard enough, and if ever you looked into a show-box,
seen full sufficient of this gaudy spectacle, without my enlarging upon
the topic. I shall only say, that I was obliged to pursue, partly, the
same road as the nuptial procession, in order to reach the beach, and
was broiled and dazzled accordingly.
At last, after traversing some desert hillocks, all of a hop with
toads and locusts (amongst which English heretics have the honour of
being interred), I passed under an arch, and suddenly the boundless
plains of ocean opened to my view. I ran to the smooth sands,
extending on both sides out of sight, cast off my clothes, and dashed
into the waves, which were coursing one another with a gentle motion,
and breaking lightly on the shores. The tide rolled over me as I lay
floating about, buoyed up by the water, and carried me wheresoever it
listed. It might have borne me far out into the main, and exposed me
to a thousand perils, before I had been aware, so totally was I
abandoned to the illusion of the moment. My ears were filled with
murmuring undecided sounds; my limbs, stretched languidly on the surge,
rose or sunk just as it swelled or subsided. In this passive,
senseless state I remained, till the sun cast a less intolerable light,
and the fishing vessels, lying out in the bay at a great distance,
spread their sails and were coming home.
Hastening back over the desert of locusts, I threw myself into the
gondola; and, no wind or wave opposing, was soon wafted across to those
venerable columns, so conspicuous in the Place of St. Mark. Directing
my course immediately to the ducal palace, I entered the grand court,
ascending the Giant's stairs, and examined at my leisure its
bas-reliefs. Then, taking the first guide that presented himself, I
was shown along several cloisters and corridors, sustained by
innumerable pillars, into the state apartments, which Tintoret and
Paolo Veronese have covered with the triumphs of their country.
A swarm of lawyers filled the Sala del Maggior Consiglio, and one of
the first advocates in the republic was pleading with all his might,
before a solemn row of senators. The eyes and ears of the assembly
seemed equally affected. Clouds of powder and volleys of execrations
issuing every instant from the disputants, I got out of their way; and
was led from hall to hall, and from picture to picture, with exemplary
resignation. To be sure, I was heartily tired, but behaved with
decency, having never once expressed how much I wished the chefs-d'uvre
I had been contemplating, less smoky and numerous.
At last, I reached once more the colonnades at the entrance, and
caught the sea-breeze in the open porticos which front San Giorgio
Maggiore. The walls are covered in most places with grim visages
sculptured in marble, whose mouths gape for accusations, and swallow
every lie that malice and revenge can dictate. I wished for a few ears
of the same kind, dispersed about the Doge's residence, to which one
might apply one's own, and catch some account of the mysteries within;
some little dialogue between the Three Inquisitors, or debate in the
Council of Ten.
This is the tribunal which holds the wealthy nobility in continual
awe; before which they appear with trembling and terror: and whose
summons they dare not disobey. Sometimes, by way of clemency, it
condemns its victims to perpetual imprisonment in close, stifling
cells, between the leads and beams of the palace; or, unwilling to
spill the blood of a fellow-citizen, generously sinks them into
dungeons, deep under the canals which wash its foundations; so that,
above and below, its majesty is contaminated by the abodes of
punishment. What other sovereign could endure the idea of having his
immediate residence polluted with tears? or revel in his halls,
conscious that many of his species were consuming their hours in
lamentations above his head, and that but a few beams separated him
from the scene of their tortures? How ever gaily disposed, could one
dance with pleasure on a pavement, beneath which lie damp and gloomy
caverns, whose inhabitants waste away by painful degrees, and feel
themselves whole years a-dying? Impressed by these terrible ideas, I
could not regard the palace without horror, and wished for the strength
of a thousand antediluvians, to level it with the sea, lay open the
secret recesses of punishment, and admit free gales and sunshine into
every den.
When I had thus vented my indignation, I repaired to the statue of
Neptune and invoked it to second my enterprise. Once upon a time no
deity had a freer hand at razing cities. His execution was renowned
throughout all antiquity, and the proudest monarchs deprecated the
wrath of . But, like the other mighty ones of ancient days, his reign
is past and his trident disregarded. Formerly any wild spirit found
favour in the eyes of fortune, and was led along the career of glory to
the deliverance of captives and the extirpation of monsters; but, in
our degenerate times, this easy road to fame is no longer open, and the
means of producing such signal events perplexed and difficult.
Abandoning, therefore, the sad tenants of the Piombi to their fate, I
left the courts, and stepping into my bark, was rowed down a canal over
which the lofty walls of the palace cast a tremendous shade. Beneath
these fatal waters the dungeons I have also been speaking of are
situated. There the wretches lie marking the sound of the oars, and
counting the free passage of every gondola. Above, a marble bridge, of
bold majestic architecture, joins the highest part of the prisons to
the secret galleries of the palace; from whence criminals are conducted
over the arch to a cruel and mysterious death. I shuddered whilst
passing below; and believe it is not without cause, this structure is
named PONTE DEl SOSPIRI. Horrors and dismal prospects haunted my fancy
upon my return. I could not dine in peace, so strongly was my
imagination affected; but snatching my pencil, I drew chasms and
subterraneous hollows, the domain of fear and torture, with chains,
racks, wheels, and dreadful engines, in the style of Piranesi. About
sunset I went and refreshed myself with the cool air and cheerful
scenery of the Fondamenti nuovi, a vast quay or terrace of white
marble, which commands the whole series of isles, from San Michele's to
Torcello,
“That rise and glitter o'er the ambient tide.”
Nothing can be more picturesque than the groups of towers and cupolas
which they present, mixed with flat roofs and low buildings, and now
and then a pine or cypress. Afar off, a little woody isle, called Il
Deserto, swells from the ocean and diversifies its expanse.
When I had spent a delightful half-hour in viewing the distant isles,
M. de. B. accompanied me to the Mendicanti, one of the four
conservatorios, which give the best musical education conceivable to
near one hundred young women. You may imagine how admirably those of
the Mendicanti in particular are taught, since their establishment is
under Bertoni's direction, who breathes around him the very soul of
grace and harmony. The chapel in which we sat to hear the oratorio was
dark and solemn; a screen of lofty pillars, formed of black marble and
highly polished, excluded the glow of the western sky, and reflected
the lamps which burn perpetually before the altar. Every tribune was
thronged with people, whose profound silence showed them worthy
auditors of Bertoni's compositions. Here were no cackling old women,
or groaning Methodists, such as infest our English churches, and scare
one's ears with hoarse coughs accompanied by the naso obligato. All
were still and attentive, imbibing the plaintive notes of the voices
with eagerness; and scarce a countenance but seemed deeply affected
with David's sorrows, the subject of the performance. I sat retired in
a solitary tribune, and felt them as my own. Night came on before the
last chorus was sung, and I still seem to hear its sacred melody.
August 18th.—It rains; the air is refreshed and I
have courage to resume my pen, which the sultry weather had forced to
lie dormant so long. I like this odd town of Venice, and find every
day some new amusement in rambling about its innumerable canals and
alleys. Sometimes I go and pry about the great church of Saint Mark,
and examine the variety of marbles and mazes of delicate sculpture with
which it is covered. The cupola, glittering with gold, mosaic, and
paintings of half the wonders in the Apocalypse, never fails
transporting me to the period of the Eastern empire. I think myself in
Constantinople, and expect Michael Paleologus with all his train. One
circumstance alone prevents my observing half the treasures of the
place, and holds down my fancy, just springing into the air: I mean the
vile stench which exhales from every recess and corner of the edifice,
and which all the altars cannot subdue.
When oppressed by this noxious atmosphere, I run up the Campanile in
the piazza, and seating myself amongst the pillars of the gallery,
breathe the fresh gales which blow from the Adriatic; survey at my
leisure all Venice beneath me, with its azure sea, white sails, and
long tracts of islands shining in the sun. Having thus laid in a
provision of wholesome breezes, I brave the vapours of the canals, and
venture into the most curious and murky quarters of the city, in search
of Turks and Infidels, that I may ask as many questions as I please
about Damascus and Suristan, those happy countries which nature has
covered with roses.
Asiatics find Venice very much to their liking, and all those I
conversed with allowed its customs and style of living had a good deal
of conformity to their own. The eternal lounging in coffee-houses and
sipping of sorbets, agrees perfectly well with the inhabitants of the
Ottoman empire, who stalk about here in their proper dresses, and smoke
their own exotic pipes, without being stared and wondered at, as in
most other European capitals. Some few of these Orientals are
communicative and enlightened; but, generally speaking, they know
nothing beyond the rule of three, and the commonest transactions of
mercantile affairs.
The Greeks are by far a more lively generation, still retaining their
propensity to works of genius and imagination. Metastasio has been
lately translated into their modern jargon, and some obliging papa or
other has had the patience to put the long-winded romance of Clelia
into a Grecian dress. I saw two or three of these volumes exposed on a
stall, under the grand arcades of the public library, as I went one day
to admire the antiques in its vestibules.
Whilst I was intent upon my occupation, a little door, I never should
have suspected, flew open, and out popped Monsieur de V., from a place
where nothing, I believe, but broomsticks and certain other utensils
were ever before deposited. This gentleman, the most active
investigator of Homer since the days of the good bishop of
Thessalonica, bespatters you with more learning in a minute than others
communicate in half a year; quotes Arabic, Greek, Hebrew, Syriac, etc.,
with a formidable fluency; and drove me from one end of the room to the
other with all the thunder of erudition. Syllables fell thicker than
hail, and in an instant I found myself so weighed down and covered,
that I prayed, for mercy's sake, to be introduced, by way of respite,
to a Laplander whom he leads about as a curiosity; a poor, harmless,
good sort of a soul, calm and indifferent, who has acquired the words
of several Oriental languages to perfection: ideas he has, in none.
We went together to view a collection of medals in one of the
Gradanigo palaces, and two or three inestimable volumes, filled with
paintings that represent the dress of the ancient Venetians; so that I
had an opportunity of observing to perfection all the Lapland
nothingness of my companion. What a perfect void! Cold and silent as
the polar regions, not one passion ever throbbed in his bosom; not one
bright ray of fancy ever glittered in his mind; without love or anger,
pleasure or pain, his days fleet smoothly along: all things considered,
I must confess I envied such comfortable apathy.
After having passed a peaceful hour in dreaming over the medals and
rarities, M. de V. was for conducting me to the Armenian convent, but I
begged to be excused, and went to S. Giovanni e Paolo's, a church ever
celebrated in the annals of painting, since it contains that
masterpiece of Titian, “The Martyrdom of St. Peter.” It being a
festival, the huge Gothic pillars were covered with red damask, and the
shrines of saints and worthies glimmered with tapers. The dim chapels
on each side the nave received a feeble light, and discovered the tombs
of ancient Doges, and the equestrian statues of many a doughty
General. I admired them all, but liked nothing so much as a snug
bas-relief I found out in a corner, which represents St. Mark and some
other good souls a-prosing, whilst his lion and the old serpent
squabble and scratch in the foreground of the sculpture, like cat and
dog by the fireside. After dinner, when the shadows of domes and
palaces began lengthening across the waves, I rowed out
“On the clear hyaline, the glassy sea,”
to observe the last sunbeams fade on the tufted gardens of the
Giudecca, and to contemplate the distant Euganean hills, once the
happiest region of Italy; where wandering nations enjoyed the
simplicity of a pastoral life, long before the arrival of Antenor. In
those ancient times, deep forests and extensive pastures covered the
shores {170a} of
the Adriatic, and innumerable flocks hung on the brow of the
mountains. This golden period ended upon the incursion of the Trojans
and Heneti; who, led by Antenor, drove away the unfortunate savages,
and possessed themselves of their habitations. {170b} The form of the hillocks is varied and
picturesque, and the sun, sinking behind them, suffuses their summits
with tints of the brightest orange. Scarce one evening have I failed
to remark the changeful scenery of the clouds, and to fill my mind with
recollections of primeval days and happier ages. Night generally
surprises me in the midst of my reveries; I return, lulled in my
gondola by the murmur of waters, pass about an hour with M. de R.,
whose imagination and sensibility almost equal your own; then, retire
to sleep, and dream of the Euganeans.
August 27th.—I am just returned from visiting the
isles of Burano, Torcello, and Mazorbo, distant about five miles from
Venice. To these amphibious spots the Romans, inhabitants of eastern
Lombardy, fled from the ravine of Attila; and, if we may believe
Cassiodorus, there was a time when they presented a beautiful
appearance. Beyond them, on the coast of the Lagunes, rose the once
populous city of Altina, with its six stately gates, which Dandolo
mentions. {170c}
Its neighbourhood was scattered with innumerable villas and temples,
composing altogether a prospect which Martial compares to Baiæ:
“Æmula Baianis Altini littora villis.”
But this agreeable scene, like so many others, is passed entirely
away, and has left nothing, except heaps of stones and misshapen
fragments, to vouch for its former magnificence. Two of the islands,
Costanziaco and Amiano, that are imagined to have contained the bowers
and gardens of the Altinatians, have sunk beneath the waters; those
which remain are scarcely worthy to rise above their surface.
Though I was persuaded little was left to be seen above ground, I
could not deny myself the imaginary pleasure of treading a corner of
the earth once so adorned and cultivated; and of walking over the
roofs, perhaps, of concealed halls and undiscovered palaces. M. de R.,
to whom I communicated my ideas, entered at once into the scheme;
hiring therefore a peiotte we took some provisions and music (to
us equally necessaries of life), and launched into the canal, between
St. Michael and Murano.
The waves coursed each other with violence, and dark clouds hung over
the grand sweep of northern mountains, whilst the west smiled with
azure and bright sunshine. Thunder rolled awfully at a distance, and
those white and greyish birds, the harbingers of storms, flitted
frequently before our bark. For some moments we were in doubt whether
to proceed; but as we advanced by a little dome in the Isle of St.
Michael, shaped like an ancient temple, the sky cleared, and the ocean
subsiding by degrees, soon presented a tranquil expanse, across which
we were smoothly wafted. Our instruments played several delightful
airs, that called forth the inhabitants of every island, and held them
silent, as if spell-bound, on the edge of their quays and terraces,
till we were out of hearing.
Leaving Murano far behind, Venice and its world of turrets began to
sink on the horizon, and the low desert isles beyond Mazorbo to lie
stretched out before us. Now we beheld vast wastes of
{171} purple flowers, and could
distinguish the low hum of the insects which hover above them; such was
the silence of the place. Coasting these solitary fields, we wound
amongst several serpentine canals, bordered by gardens of figs and
pomegranates, with neat Indian-looking inclosures of cane and reed: an
aromatic plant clothes the margin of the waters, which the people
justly dignify with the title of marine incense. It proved very
serviceable in subduing a musky odour, which attacked us the moment we
landed, and which proceeds from serpents that lurk in the hedges.
These animals, say the gondoliers, defend immense treasures which lie
buried under the ruins. Woe to those who attempt invading them, or
prying too cautiously about!
Not choosing to be devoured, we left many a mount of fragments
unnoticed, and made the best of our way to a little green, free from
weeds or adders, bounded on one side by a miserable shed, decorated
with the name of the Podesta's residence, and on the other by a
circular church. Some remains of tolerable antique sculpture are
enchased in the walls; and the dome, supported by pillars of a smooth
Grecian marble, though uncouth and ill-proportioned, impresses a sort
of veneration, and transports the fancy to the twilight glimmering
period when it was raised.
Having surveyed what little was visible, and given as much career to
our imaginations as the scene inspired, we walked over a soil composed
of crumbling bricks and cement to the cathedral; whose arches, turned
on the ancient Roman principle, convinced us that it dates as high as
the sixth or seventh century.
Nothing can be well more fantastic than the ornaments of this
structure, formed from the ruins of the Pagan temples of Altina, and
incrusted with a gilt mosaic, like that which covers our Edward the
Confessor's tomb. The pavement, composed of various precious marbles,
is richer and more beautiful than one could have expected, in a place
where every other object savours of the grossest barbarism. At the
farther end, beyond the altar, appears a semicircular niche, with seats
like the gradines of a diminutive amphitheatre; above rise the quaint
forms of the apostles, in red, blue, green, and black mosaic, and in
the midst of the goodly group a sort of marble chair, cool and
penitential enough, where St. Lorenzo Giustiniani sat to hold a
provincial council, the Lord knows how long ago! The fount for holy
water stands by the principal entrance, fronting this curious recess,
and seems to have belonged to some place of Gentile worship. The
figures of horned imps cling round its sides, more devilish, more
Egyptian, than any I ever beheld. The dragons on old china are not
more whimsical: I longed to have it filled with bats' blood, and to
have sent it by way of present to the sabbath; I can assure you it
would have done honour to their witcheries. The sculpture is not the
most delicate, but I cannot say a great deal about it, as but little
light reaches the spot where it is fixed. Indeed, the whole church is
far from luminous, its windows being narrow and near the roof, with
shutters composed of blocks of marble, which nothing but the last
whirlwind, one should think, could move from their hinges.
By the time we had examined every nook and corner of this singular
edifice, and caught perhaps some small portion of sanctity by sitting
in San Lorenzo's chair, dinner was prepared in a neighbouring convent,
and the nuns, allured by the sound of our flutes and oboes, peeped out
of their cells and showed themselves by dozens at the grate. Some few
agreeable faces and interesting eyes enlivened the dark sisterhood; all
seemed to catch a gleam of pleasure from the music; two or three of
them, probably the last immured, let fall a tear, and suffered the
recollection of the world and its profane joys to interrupt for a
moment their sacred tranquillity.
We stayed till the sun was low, and the breezes blew cool from the
ocean, on purpose that they might listen as long as possible to a
harmony which seemed to issue, as the old abbess expressed herself,
from the gates of paradise ajar. A thousand benedictions consecrated
our departure; twilight came on just as we entered the bark and rowed
out upon the waves, agitated by a fresh gale, but fearing nothing under
the protection of St. Margherita, whose good wishes our music had
secured.
In two hours we were safely landed at the Fondamenti nuovi, and went
immediately to the Mendicanti, where they were performing the oratorio
of Sisera. The composer, a young man, had displayed great fire and
originality in this performance; and a knowledge of character seldom
found in the most celebrated masters. The supplication of the thirsty
chieftain, and Jael's insinuating arts and pious treachery, are
admirably expressed; but the agitation and bodily slumbers which
precede his death, are imagined in the highest strain of genius. The
terror and agony of his dreams made me start, more than once, from my
seat; and all the horrors of his assassination seemed full before me,
so fatal was the sound of the instrument, so just the conduct of the
harmony.
Too much applause cannot be given to the Marchetti, who sang the part
of Sisera, and seconded the composer's ideas by the most feeling and
spirited execution. There are few things I shall regret more at
Venice, than this conservatorio. Whenever I am musically given, I fly
to it, and hear the most striking finales in Bertoni's and Anfosse's
operas, as long and often as I please.
The sight of the orchestra still makes me smile. You know, I
suppose, it is entirely of the female gender, and that nothing is more
common than to see a delicate white hand journeying across an enormous
double bass, or a pair of roseate cheeks puffing, with all their
efforts, at a French horn. Some that are grown old and Amazonian, who
have abandoned their fiddles and their lovers, take vigorously to the
kettledrum; and one poor limping lady, who had been crossed in love,
now makes an admirable figure on the bassoon.
Good-night! I am quite exhausted with composing a chorus for these
same Amazonians. The poetry I send you, which seems to be some of the
most picturesque and nervous an Italian ever produced. The music takes
up too much room to travel at present. One day or other, perhaps, we
may hear it in some dark grove, when the moon is eclipsed and nature in
alarm.
This is not the last letter you would receive from Venice, was I not
hurrying to Lucca, where Pacchierotti sings next week, in the opera of
Quinto Fabio, of all operas the most worthy to excuse such a musical
fanaticism. Adieu.
September 4th.—I was sorry to leave Venice, and
regretted my peaceful excursions upon the Adriatic, when the Euganean
hills were lost in a golden haze, and the sun cast his departing gleam
across the waters. No bright rays illuminated my departure, but the
coolness and perfume of the air made some amends for their absence.
About an hour's rowing from the isle of Saint Giorgio in Alga,
brought us to the shores of Fusina, right opposite the opening where
the Brenta mixes with the sea. This river flows calmly between banks
of verdure, crowned by poplars, with vines twining round every stalk,
and depending from tree to tree in beautiful festoons. Beds of mint
and flowers clothe the brink of the stream, except where a tall growth
of reeds and osiers lift themselves to the breezes. I heard their
whispers as we glided along; and had I been alone might have told you
what they said to me; but such aërial oracles must be approached in
solitude. The morning continued to lower as we advanced; scarce a wind
ventured to breathe; all was still and placid as the surface of the
Brenta. No sound struck my ears except the bargemen hallooing to open
the sluices, and deepen the water.
As yet I had not perceived an habitation; no other objects than green
inclosures and fields of Turkish corn, shaded with vines and poplars,
met my eyes wherever I turned them.
Our navigation, the tranquil streams and cultivated banks, in short
the whole landscape, had a sort of Chinese cast, which led me into
Quang-Si and Quang-Tong. The variety of canes, reeds, and blooming
rushes, shooting from the slopes, confirmed my fancies, and when I
beheld the yellow nenupha expanding its broad leaves to the current, I
thought of the Tao-Se, and venerated one of the chief ingredients in
their beverage of immortality. Landing where this magic vegetation
appeared most luxuriant, I cropped the flowers; but searched in vain
for the kernels, which, according to the doctrine of the Bonzes,
produce such wonderful effects. Though I was deceived in this pursuit,
I gained, however, in another. The bank upon which I had sprung
presented a continual walk of level turf, surrounded by vines,
concealing the trees which supported them, and forming the most
delightful bowers. Under these garlands I passed, and gathered the
ripe clusters which dangled around, convinced that Noah had discovered
a far superior beverage to that of the Tao-Sé. Whilst I was thus
agreeably employed, it began to rain, and the earth to exhale a fresh,
reviving odour, highly grateful to one who had been so long confined to
walls and waters. After breathing nothing but the essence of the
canals and the flavours of the Rialto, after the jingling of bells and
brawls of the gondoliers, imagine how agreeable it was to scent the
perfume of clover, to tread a springing herbage, and listen in silence
to the showers pattering amongst the leaves. I staid so long amidst
the vines, that it grew late before we rowed by the Mira, a village of
palaces, whose courts and gardens, as magnificent as statues, terraces,
and vases can make them, compose a grand, though far from a rural
prospect.
Not being greatly delighted with such scenery, we stayed no longer
than our dinner required, and reached the Dolo an hour before sunset.
Passing the great sluices, whose gates opened with a thundering noise,
we continued our course along the peaceful Brenta, winding its broad
full stream through impenetrable copses, surmounted by tall waving
poplars. Day was about to close when we reached Fiesso; and it being a
misty evening, I could scarcely distinguish the pompous facade of the
Pisani palace. That where we supped looks upon a broad mass of
foliage, which I contemplated with pleasure as it sank in the dusk.
We walked a long while under a pavilion stretched before the
entrance, breathing the freshness of the wood after the shower, and
hearing the drops trickle down the awning above our heads. The Galuzzi
sang some of her father Ferandini's compositions, with a fire, an
energy, an expression, that one moment raised me to a pitch of heroism,
and the next dissolved me in tears. Her cheek was flushed with
inspiration, her eyes glistened; the whole tone of her countenance was
like that of a person rapt and inspired. I forgot both time and place
whilst she was breathing forth such celestial harmony. The night stole
imperceptibly away, and morning dawned before I awoke from my trance.
I don't recollect ever to have passed an evening, which every
circumstance conspired so much to improve. In general, my musical
pleasures suffer terrible abatements from the phlegm and stupidity of
my neighbourhood, but here every one seemed to catch the flame, and to
listen with reciprocal delight. The C—- threw quick around her the
glancing fires of genius: and, what with the song of the Galuzzi, and
those intellectual meteors, I scarcely knew to what element I was
transported; and doubted for several moments whether I had not fallen
into a celestial dream. I loathed the light of the morning star, which
summoned me to depart; and, if I may express myself so poetically,
“Cast many a longing, ling'ring look behind.”
September 5th.—The glow and splendour of the rising
sun, for once in my life, drew little of my attention. I was too
deeply plunged in my reveries, to notice the landscape which lay before
me; and the walls of Padua presented themselves some time ere I was
aware. At any other moment, how sensibly should I have been affected
with their appearance! how many ideas of Antenor and his Trojans, would
have thronged into my memory! but now I regarded the scene with
indifference, and passed many a palace, and many a woody garden, with
my eyes riveted to the ground. The first object that appeared, upon
lifting them up, was a confused pile of spires and cupolas, dedicated
to blessed St. Anthony, who betook himself to the conversion of fish,
after the heretics would lend no ear to his discourses.
You are too well apprised of the veneration I have always entertained
for this ingenious preacher, to doubt that I immediately repaired to
his shrine and offered up my little orisons before it. Mine was a
disturbed spirit, and required all the balm of St. Anthony's kindness
to appease it. Perhaps you will say I had better gone to bed, and
applied myself to my sleepy friend, the pagan divinity. 'Tis probable
that you are in the right; but I could not retire to rest without
venting some portion of effervescence in sighs and supplications. The
nave was filled with decrepit women and feeble children, kneeling by
baskets of vegetables and other provisions; which, by good Anthony's
interposition, they hoped to sell advantageously in the course of the
day. Beyond these, nearer the choir, and in a gloomier part of the
edifice, knelt a row of rueful penitents, smiting their breasts, and
lifting their eyes to heaven. Further on, in front of the dark recess,
where the sacred relics are deposited, a few desperate, melancholy
sinners lay prostrate.
To these I joined myself, and fell down on the steps before the
shrine. The sunbeams had not yet penetrated into this religious
quarter; and the only light it received proceeded from the golden
lamps, which hang in clusters round the sanctuary. A lofty altar,
decked with superstitious prodigality, conceals the holy pile from
profane glances. Those who are profoundly touched with its sanctity
may approach, and walking round, look through the crevices of the tomb,
and rub their noses against the identical bones of St. Anthony, which,
it is observed, exude a balsamic odour. But supposing a traveller ever
so heretical, I would advise him by no means to neglect this
pilgrimage; since every part of the recess he visits is decorated with
the most exquisite sculptures. Sansovino and the best artists have
vied with each other in carving the alto relievos of the arcade, which,
for design and execution, would do honour to the sculptors of
antiquity.
Having observed these objects with much less exactness than they
merited, and acted perhaps too capital a part amongst the devotees, I
hastened to the inn, luckily hard by, and one of the best I am
acquainted with. Here I soon fell asleep in defiance of sunshine.
'Tis true my slumbers were not a little agitated. St. Anthony had been
deaf to my prayer, and I still found myself a frail, infatuated mortal.
At five I got up; we dined, and afterwards, scarcely knowing, nor
much caring, what became of us, we strolled to the great hall of the
town; an enormous edifice, as large as that of Westminster, but free
from stalls, or shops, or nests of litigation. The roof, one spacious
vault of brown timber, casts a solemn gloom, which was still increased
by the lateness of the hour, and not diminished by the wan light,
admitted through the windows of pale blue glass. The size and shape of
this colossal chamber, the coving of the roof, with beams like perches
for the feathered race, stretching across it, and, above all, the
watery gleams that glanced through the casements, possessed my fancy
with ideas of Noah's ark, and almost persuaded me I beheld that
extraordinary vessel. The representation one sees of it in Scheutzer's
“Physica Sacra” seems to be formed upon this very model, and for
several moments I indulged the chimera of imagining myself confined
within its precincts. How willingly, could I but choose my companions,
would I encounter a deluge, to float whole years instead of months upon
the waves!
We remained walking to and fro in the ark, till the twilight faded
into total darkness. It was then full time to retire, as the guardian
of the place was by no means formed to divine our diluvian ideas.
September 6th.—At Padua, I was too near the last and
one of the most celebrated abodes of Petrarch, to make the omission of
a visit excusable; had I not been in a disposition to render such a
pilgrimage peculiarly pleasing. I set forwards from Padua after
dinner, so as to arrive some time before sunset. Nothing could be
finer than the day; and I had every reason to promise myself a serene
and delicious hour, before the sun might go down. I put the poems of
Petrarch into my pocket; and, as my road lay chiefly through lanes,
planted on either side with mulberries and poplars, from which vines
hung dangling in careless festoons, I found many a bowering shade,
where I sat, at intervals, to indulge my pensive humour over some
ejaculatory sonnet; as the pilgrim, on his journey to Loretto, reposes
here and there, to offer his prayers and meditations to the Virgin. In
little more than an hour and half, I found myself in the midst of the
Euganean hills, and, after winding almost another hour amongst them, I
got, before I was well aware, into the village of Arqua. Nothing can
be more sequestered or obscure than its situation. It had rather a
deserted appearance; several of its houses being destitute of
inhabitants, and crumbling into ruins. Two or three of them, however,
exhibited ancient towers, richly mantled with ivy, and surrounded with
cypress, that retained the air of having once belonged to persons of
consideration. Their present abandoned state nourished the melancholy
idea with which I entered the village. Could one approach the last
retreat of genius, and not look for some glow of its departed
splendour?
“Dear to the pensive eye of fond regret,
Is light still beaming from a sun that's set.”
The residence of Petrarch at Arqua is said to have drawn thither from
Padua the society of its more enlightened citizens. This city, whilst
Petrarch lived in its neighbourhood, was engaged in rebellion against
the Venetians; and Francis de Carrara, the head of it, went often to
Arqua, to consult Petrarch; when he found himself obliged to sue to
Venice for peace. The poet was indeed deputed, upon this occasion, his
ambassador to the state; as being a person whose character and credit
were most likely to appease its wrath. His success in this embassy
might, perhaps, have been some recompense for an employment he accepted
with much regret, as it forced him from his beloved retirement. In a
letter to one of his friends, written about this period of his life, he
says: “I pass the greatest part of the year in the country, which I
have always preferred to cities: I read; I write; I think: thus, my
life and my pleasures are like those of youth. I take pains to hide
myself; but I cannot escape visits: it is an honour which displeases
and wearies me. In my little house on the Euganean hills, I hope to
pass my few remaining days in tranquillity, and to have always before
my eyes my dead, or my absent, friends.” I was musing on these
circumstances as I walked along the village, till a venerable old
woman, seated at her door with her distaff in her hand, observing me,
soon guessed the cause of my excursion; and offered to guide me to
Petrarch's house. The remainder of my way was short, and well amused
by my guide's enthusiastic expressions of veneration for the poet's
memory; which, she assured me, she felt but in common with the other
inhabitants of the village. When we came to the door of the house, we
met the peasant, its present possessor. The old woman, recommending
the stranger and his curiosity to her neighbour's good offices,
departed. I entered immediately, and ran over every room, which the
peasant assured me, in confirmation of what I before learnt from better
authority, were preserved, as nearly as they could be, in the state
Petrarch had left them. The house and premises, having unfortunately
been transmitted from one enthusiast of his name to another, no tenants
have been admitted, but under the strictest prohibition of making any
change in the form of the apartments, or in the memorial relics
belonging to the place: and, to say the truth, everything I saw in it,
save a few articles of the peasant's furniture in the kitchen, has an
authentic appearance. Three of the rooms below stairs are particularly
shown, and they have nothing in them but what once belonged to the
poet. In one, which I think they call his parlour, is a very antique
cupboard; where, it is supposed, he deposited some precious part of his
literary treasure. The ceiling is painted in a grotesque manner. A
niche in the wall contains the skeleton of his favourite cat, with a
Latin epigram beneath, of Petrarch's composition. It is good enough to
deserve being copied; but the lateness of the hour did not allow me
time. A little room, beyond this, is said to have been his study: the
walls of it, from top to bottom, are scribbled over with sonnets, and
poetical eulogies on Petrarch, ancient and modern: many of which are
subscribed by persons, of distinguished rank and talents, Italians as
well as strangers. Here, too, is the bard's old chair, and on it is
displayed a great deal of heavy, ornamental carpentry; which required
no stretch of faith to be believed the manufacture of the fourteenth
century. You may be sure, I placed myself in it, with much veneration,
and the most resigned assent to Mrs. Dobson's relation: that Petrarch,
sitting in this same chair, was found dead in his library, with one arm
leaning on a book. Who could sit in Petrarch's chair, void of some
effect? I rose not from it without a train of pensive sentiments and
soft impressions; which I ever love to indulge. I was now led into a
larger room, behind that I first saw; where, it is likely enough, the
poet, according to the peasant's information, received the visits of
his friends. Its walls were adorned with landscapes and pastoral
scenes, in such painting as Petrarch himself might, and is supposed to
have executed. Void of taste and elegance, either in the design or
colouring, they bear some characteristic marks of the age to which they
are, with no improbability, assigned; and, separate from the merit of
exhibiting repeatedly the portraits of Petrarch and Laura, are a
valuable sketch of the rude infancy of the art, where it rose with such
hasty vigour to perfection. Having seen all that was left unchanged in
this consecrated mansion, I passed through a room, said to have been
the bard's bed-room, and stepped into the garden, situated on a green
slope, descending directly from the house. It is now rather an orchard
than a garden; a spot of small extent, and without much else to
recommend it, but that it once was the property of Petrarch. It is not
pretended to have retained the form in which he left it. An agreeably
wild and melancholy kind of view, which it commands over the Euganean
hills, and which I beheld under the calm glow of approaching sunset,
must often, at the same moment, have soothed the poet's anxious
feelings, and hushed his active imagination, as it did my own, into a
delicious repose. Having lingered here till the sun was sunk beneath
the horizon, I was led a little way farther in the village, to see
Petrarch's fountain. Hippocrene itself could not have been more
esteemed by the poet, than this, his gift, by all the inhabitants of
Arqua. The spring is copious, clear, and of excellent water; I need
not say with what relish I drank of it. The last religious act in my
little pilgrimage was a visit to the church-yard; where I strewed a few
flowers, the fairest of the season, on the poet's tomb; and departed
for Padua by the light of the moon.
September 7th.—Immediately after breakfast, we went
to St. Justina's, a noble temple, designed by Palladio, and worthy of
his reputation. The dimensions are vast, and the equal distribution of
light and ornament truly admirable. Upon my first entrance, the long
perspective of domes above, and chequered marble below, struck me with
surprise and pleasure. I roved about the spacious aisles for several
minutes, then sat down under the grand cupola, and admired the
beautiful symmetry of the building.
Both extremities of the cross aisles are terminated by altar and
tombs of very remote antiquity, adorned with uncouth sculptures of the
Evangelists, supported by wreathed columns of alabaster, round which,
to my no small astonishment, four or five gawky fellows were waddling
on their knees, persuaded, it seems, that this strange devotion would
cure the rheumatism, or any other aches with which they were
afflicted. You can have no conception of the ridiculous attitudes into
which they threw themselves; nor the difficulty with which they
squeezed along, between the middle column of the tomb and those which
surrounded it. No criminal in the pillory ever exhibited a more rueful
appearance, no swine ever scrubbed itself more fervently than these
infatuated lubbers.
I left them hard at work, taking more exercise than had been their
lot for many a day; and, mounting into the organ gallery, listened to
Turini's {182}
music with infinite satisfaction. The loud harmonious tones of the
instrument filled the whole edifice; and, being repeated by the echoes
of its lofty domes and arches, produced a wonderful effect. Turini,
aware of this circumstance, adapts his compositions with great
intelligence to the place, and makes his slave, the organ, send forth
the most affecting, long-protracted sounds, which languish in the air,
and are some time a-dying. Nothing can be more original than his
style. Deprived of sight by an unhappy accident, in the flower of his
days, he gave up his entire soul to music, and scarcely exists but
through its medium.
When we came out of St. Justina's, the azure of the sky and the
softness of the air inclined us to think of some excursion. Where
could I wish to go, but to the place in which I had been so delighted?
Besides, it was proper to make the C. another visit, and proper to see
the Pisani palace, which happily I had before neglected. All these
proprieties considered, M. de R. accompanied me to Fiesso.
The sun was just sunk when we arrived; the whole ether in a glow, and
the fragrance of the arched citron alleys delightful. Beneath them I
walked in the cool, till the Galuzzi began once more her enchanting
melody. She sung till the moon tempted the fascinating G—-a and
myself to stray on the banks of the Brenta. A profound calm reigned
upon the woods and the waters, and moonlight added serenity to a scene
naturally peaceful. We listened to the faint murmurs of the leaves,
and the distant rural noises, observing the gleams that quivered on the
river, and discovered a mutual delight in contemplating the same
objects.
We supped late: before the Galuzzi had repeated the airs which had
most affected me, morning began to dawn.
September 8th.—It was evening, and I was still
asleep; not in a tranquil slumber, but at the mercy of fantastic
visions. The want of sound repose had thrown me into a feverish
impatient mood, that was alone to be subdued by harmony. Scarcely had
I snatched some slight refreshment, before I flew to the great organ at
St. Justina's, but tried, this time, to compose myself in vain. M. de
R., finding my endeavours unsuccessful, proposed, by way of diverting
my attention, that we should set out immediately for one of the
Euganean hills about five or seven miles from Padua, at the foot of
which some antique baths had very lately been discovered. I consented,
without hesitation, little concerned whither I went, or what happened
to me, provided the scene was often shifted. The lanes and enclosures
we passed on our road to the hills, appeared in all the gaiety that
verdure, flowers, and sunshine could give them. But my pleasures were
overcast, and I beheld every object, however cheerful, through a dusky
medium. Deeply engaged in conversation, distance made no impression;
and we beheld the meadows, over which the ruins are scattered, lie
before us, when we still imagined ourselves several miles away. Had I
but enjoyed my former serenity, how agreeably would such a landscape
have affected my imagination! How lightly should I not have run over
the herbage, and viewed the irregular shrubby hills, diversified with
clumps of cypress, verdant spots, and pastoral cottages, such as
Zuccarelli loved to paint! No scene could be more smiling than this
which here presented itself, or answer, in a fuller degree, the ideas I
had formed of Italy.
Leaving our carriage at the entrance of the mead, we traversed its
flowery surface, and shortly perceived among the grass an oblong basin,
incrusted with pure white marble. Most of the slabs are large and
perfect, apparently brought from Greece, and still retaining their
polished smoothness. The pipes to convey the waters are still
discernible; in short, the whole ground-plan may be easily traced.
Nothing more remains: the pillars and arcades are fallen, and one or
two pedestals alone vouch for their former existence. Near the
principal bath, we remarked the platforms of several circular
apartments, paved with mosaic, in a neat simple taste, far from
inelegant. Weeds have not yet sprung up amongst the crevices; and the
universal freshness of the ruin shows that it has not been long
exposed.
Theodoric is the prince to whom these structures are attributed; and
Cassiodorus, the prime chronicler of the country, is quoted to maintain
the supposition. My spirit was too much engaged to make any learned
parade, or to dispute upon a subject, which I abandon, with all its
glories, to calmer and less impatient minds.
Having taken a cursory view of the ruins in the mead, we ascended the
hill which borders upon it, and surveyed a prospect of the same nature,
though in a more lovely and expanded style, than that which I beheld
from Mosolente. Padua crowns the landscape, with its towers and
cupolas rising from a continued grove; and, from the drawings I have
seen, I should conjecture that Damascus presents somewhat of a similar
appearance.
Taking our eyes off this extensive prospect, we turned them to the
fragments beneath our feet. The walls appear plainly composed of the
opus reticulatum so universal in the environs of Naples. A sort of
terrace, with the bases of columns circling the mount, leads me to
imagine here were formerly arcades and porticos, for enjoying the view;
for on the summit I could trace no vestiges of any considerable
structure, and am therefore inclined to conclude, that nothing more
than a colonnade surrounded the hill, leading perhaps to some slight
fane, or pavilion, for the recreation of the bathers below.
A profusion of aromatic flowers covered the slopes, and exhaled
additional perfumes, as the sun declined, and the still hour
approached, which was wont to spread over my mind a divine composure,
and to restore the tranquillity I might have lost in the day. But now
it diffused in vain its reviving coolness, and I remained, if possible,
more sad and restless than before.
To produce such a revolution, divine how I must have been fascinated!
and be not surprised at my repeating all the way that pathetic sonnet
of Petrarch:
“O giorno, o ora, o ultimo momento,
O stelle congiurate a 'mpoverirme!
O fido sguardo, or che volei tu dirme,
Partend' io, per non esser mai contento?”
September 9th.—You may imagine how I felt when the
hour of leaving Padua drew near. It happened to be a high festival,
and mass celebrated at the grand church of St. Anthony, with more than
ordinary splendour. The music drawing us thither, we found every
chapel twinkling with lights, and the choir filled with a vapour of
incense. Through its medium several cloth of gold figures discovered
themselves, ministering before the altar, and acting their parts with a
sacred pomposity, wonderfully imposing. I attended very little to
their functions, but the plaintive tones of the voices and instruments,
so consonant with my own feelings, melted me into tears, and gave me,
no doubt, the exterior of exalted piety. Guadazni sang amongst the
other musicians, but seemed to be sinking apace into devotion and
obscurity. The ceremony ended, I took leave of M. de R. with sincere
regret, and was driven away to Vicenza. Of my journey I scarce know
any more than that the evening was cold and rainy, that I shivered and
was miserable.
September 10th.—The morning being overcast, I went,
full of the spirit of Æschylus, to the Olympic Theatre, and vented my
evil temper in reciting some of the most tremendous verses of his
furies. The august front of the scene, and its three grand streets of
fanes and palaces, inspired me with the loftiest sentiments of the
Grecian drama; but the dubious light admitted through windows, scarce
visible between the rows of statues which crown the entablature, sunk
me into fits of gloom and sadness. I mused a long while in the darkest
and most retired recess of the edifice, fancying I had penetrated into
a real and perfect monument of antiquity, which till this moment had
remained undiscovered. It is impossible to conceive a structure more
truly classical, or to point out a single ornament which has not the
best antique authority. I am not in the least surprised that the
citizens of Vicenza enthusiastically gave in to Palladio's plan, and
sacrificed large sums to erect so beautiful a model. When finished,
they procured, at a vast expense, the representation of a Grecian
tragedy, with its chorus and majestic decorations. You can enter into
the rapture of an artist, who sees his fondest vision realized; and can
easily conceive how it was, that Palladio esteemed this compliment the
most flattering reward. After I had given scope to the fancies which
the scene suggested, we set out for Verona.
The situation is striking and picturesque. A long line of battlement
walls, flanked by venerable towers, mounts the hill in a grand
irregular sweep, and incloses many a woody garden and grove of slender
cypress. Beyond rises an awful assembly of mountains; opposite to
which a fertile plain presents itself, decked with all the variety of
meads and thickets, olive-grounds and vineyards.
Amongst these our road kept winding till we entered the city gate,
and passed (the post knows how many streets and alleys in the way!) to
the inn, a lofty, handsome-looking building; but so full that we were
obliged to take up with an apartment on its very summit, open to all
the winds, like the magic chamber Apuleius mentions, and commanding the
roofs of half Verona. Here and there a pine shot up amongst them, and
the shady hills, terminating the perspective with their walls and
turrets, formed a romantic scene.
Placing our table in a balcony, to enjoy the prospect with greater
freedom, we feasted upon fish from the Lago di Garda, and the delicious
fruits of the country,—grapes worthy of Canaan, and peaches such as
Eden itself might have gloried in producing. Thus did I remain,
solacing myself, breathing the cool air, and remarking the evening
tints of the mountains. Neither the paintings of Count this, nor the
antiquities of the Marquis t'other, could tempt me from my aërial
situation; I refused hunting out the famous Paolos scattered over the
town, and sat like the owl in the Georgics,
“Solis et occasom servans de culmine summo.”
Twilight drawing on, I left my haunt, and stealing downstairs,
inquired for a guide to conduct me to the amphitheatre, perhaps the
most entire monument of Roman days. The people of the house, instead
of bringing me a quiet peasant, officiously delivered me up to a
professed antiquary, one of those diligent plausible young men, to
whom, God help me! I have so capital an aversion. This sweet spark
displayed all his little erudition, and flourished away upon cloacas
and vomitoriums with eternal fluency. He was very profound in the
doctrine of conduits, and knew to admiration how the filthiness of all
the amphitheatre was disposed of; but perceiving my inattention, and
having just grace enough to remark that I chose one side of the street
when he preferred the other, and sometimes trotted through despair in
the kennel, he made me a pretty bow, I threw him half-a-crown, and
seeing the ruins before me, traversed a gloomy arcade and emerged alone
into the arena. A smooth turf covers its surface, from which a
spacious row of gradines rises to a majestic elevation. Four arches,
with their simple Doric ornament, alone remain of the grand circle
which once lifted itself above the highest seats of the amphitheatre;
and, had it not been for Gothic violence, this part of the structure
would have equally resisted the ravages of time. Nothing can be more
exact than the preservation of the gradines; not a block has sunk from
its place, and whatever trifling injuries they may have received have
been carefully repaired. The two chief entrances are rebuilt with
solidity and closed by portals, no passage being permitted through the
theatre except at public shows and representations, sometimes still
given in the arena.
When I paced slowly across it, silence reigned undisturbed amongst
the awful ruins, and nothing moved, save the weeds and grasses which
skirt the walls and tremble with the faintest breeze.
I liked the idea of being thus shut in on every side by endless
gradines, abandoned to a stillness and solitude I was so peculiarly
disposed to taste. Throwing myself upon the grass in the middle of the
arena, I enjoyed the freedom of my situation; and pursued the last
tracks of light, as they faded behind the solitary arches, which rose
above the rest. Red and fatal were the tints of the western sky; the
wind blew chill and hollow, and something more than common seemed to
issue from the withering herbage on the walls. I started up, fled
through a dark arcade, where water falls drop by drop, and arrived,
panting, in the great square before the ruins. Directing my steps
across it, I reached an ancient castle, once inhabited by the
Scaligeri, sovereigns of Verona. Hard by appeared the ruins of a
triumphal arch, which most antiquarians ascribe to Vitruvius, enriched
with delicate scrolls and flowery ornaments. I could have passed
half-an-hour very agreeably in copying these elegant sculptures; but
night covering them with her shades, I returned home to the Corso;
where the outlines of several palaces, designed by Michel San Michele,
attracted my attention. But it was too dusky to examine their details.
September 11th.—Traversing once more the grand
piazza, and casting a last glance upon the amphitheatre, we passed
under a lofty arch which terminates the perspective, and left Verona by
a wide, irregular, picturesque street, commanding, whenever you look
back, a striking scene of towers, cypress, and mountains.
The country, between this beautiful town and Mantua, presents one
continued grove of dwarfish mulberries, among which start up
innumerable barren hills. Now and then a knot of poplars diversify
their craggy summits, and sometimes a miserable shed. Mantua itself
rises out of a morass formed by the Mincio, whose course, in most
places, is so choked up with reeds as to be scarcely discernible. It
requires a creative imagination to discover any charms in such a
prospect, and a strong prepossession not to be disgusted with the scene
where Virgil was born. For my own part, I approached this
neighbourhood with proper deference, and began to feel the God, but
finding no tufted tree on which I could suspend my lyre, or verdant
bank which invited to repose, I abandoned poetry and entered the city
in despair.
The beating of drums, and sight of German whiskers, finished what
croaking frogs and stagnant ditches had begun. Every classic idea
being scared by such sounds and such objects, I dined in dudgeon, and
refused stirring out till late in the evening.
A few paces from the town stand the remains of the palace where the
Gonzagas formerly resided. This I could not resist looking at, and was
amply rewarded. Several of the apartments, adorned by the bold pencil
of Julio Romano, merit the most exact attention; and the grotesques,
with which the stucco ceilings are covered, equal the celebrated
loggios of the Vatican. I don't recollect ever having seen these
elegant designs engraven, and believe it would be perfectly worth the
pains of some capital artist to copy them. Being in fresco upon damp
neglected walls, each year diminishes their number, and every winter
moulders some beautiful figure away.
The subjects, mostly from antique fables, are treated with all the
purity and gracefulness of Raphael. Amongst others the story of
Polypheme is very conspicuous. Acis appears, reclined with his beloved
Galatea, on the shore of the ocean, whilst their gigantic enemy, seated
above on the brow of Ætna, seems by the paleness and horrors of his
countenance to meditate some terrible revenge.
When it was too late to examine the paintings any longer, I walked
into a sort of court, or rather garden, which had been decorated with
fountains and antique statues. Their fragments still remain amongst
weeds and beds of flowers, for every corner of the place is smothered
with vegetation. Here nettles grow thick and rampant: there, tuberoses
and jessamine cling around mounds of ruins, which during the elegant
reign of the Gonzagas led to grottos and subterranean apartments,
concealed from vulgar eyes, and sacred to the most refined enjoyments.
I gathered a tuberose that sprang from a shell of white marble, once
trickling with water, now half filled with mould, and carrying it home,
shut myself up for the rest of the night, inhaled its perfume, and fell
a-dreaming.
September 12th.—A shower having fallen, the air was
refreshed, and the drops still glittered upon the vines, through which
our road conducted us. Three or four miles from Mantua the scene
changed to extensive grounds of rice, and meads of the tenderest
verdure watered by springs, whose frequent meanders gave to the whole
prospect the appearance of a vast green carpet shot with silver.
Further on we crossed the Po, and passing Guastalla, entered a woody
country full of inclosures and villages; herds feeding in the meadows,
and poultry parading before every wicket.
The peasants were busied in winnowing their corn; or, mounted upon
the elms and poplars, gathering the rich clusters from the vines that
hang streaming in braids from one branch to another. I was surprised
to find myself already in the midst of the vintage, and to see every
road crowded with carts and baskets bringing it along; you cannot
imagine a pleasanter scene.
Round Reggio it grew still more lively, and on the other side of that
agreeable little city, I remarked many a cottage that Tityrus might
have inhabited, with its garden and willow hedge in flower, swarming
with bees. Our road, the smoothest conceivable, led us, perhaps too
rapidly, by so cheerful a landscape. I caught glimpses of fields and
copses as we fled along, that could have afforded me amusement for
hours, and orchards on gentle acclivities, beneath which I could have
walked till evening. The trees literally bent under their loads of
fruit, and innumerable ruddy apples lay scattered upon the ground—
“Strata jacent passim sus quæque sub arbore poma.”
Beyond these rich masses of foliage, to which the sun lent additional
splendour, at the utmost extremity of the pastures, rose the irregular
ridge of the Apennines, whose deep blue presented a striking contrast
to the glowing colours of the foreground. I fixed my eyes on the chain
of distant mountains, and indulged, as usual, my conjectures of what
was going forward on their summits; of those who tended goats on the
edge of the precipice; traversed, at this moment, the dark thickets of
pines, and passed their lives in yonder sheds, contented and unknown.
Such were the dreams that filled my fancy, and kept it incessantly
employed till it was dusk, and the moon began to show herself; the same
moon which, but a few days ago, had seen me so happy at Fiesso. Her
soft light reposed upon the meads, that had been newly mown, and the
shadows of tall poplars were cast aslant them. I left my carriage, and
running into the dim haze, abandoned myself to the recollection it
inspired. During an hour, I kept continually flying forwards; bounding
from enclosure to enclosure like a hunted antelope, and forgetting
where I was or whither I was going. One sole idea filled my mind, and
led me on with such heedless rapidity, that I stumbled over stones and
bushes, and entangled myself on every wreath of vines which opposed my
progress. At length, having wandered where chance or the wildness of
my fancy led, till the lateness of the evening alarmed me, I regained
the chaise as fast as I could, and arrived between ten and eleven at
the place of my destination.
September 13th.—Having but a moment or two at
liberty, I hurried early in the morning to the palace, and entered an
elegant Ionic court, with arcades of the whitest stone, through which I
caught peeps of a clear blue sky and groves of cypresses. Some few
good paintings still adorn the apartments, but the best part of the
collection has been disposed of, for a hundred thousand sequins,
amongst which was that inestimable picture, the Notte of Corregio. An
excellent copy remained and convinced me the original was not
undeservedly celebrated. None but the pencil of Corregio ever designed
such graceful angels, nor imagined such a pearly dawn to cast around
them. Ten thousand times, I dare say, has the subject of the Nativity
been treated, and as many painters have failed in rendering it so
pleasing. The break of day, the first smiles of the celestial infant,
and the truth, the simplicity of every countenance, cannot be too
warmly admired. In the other rooms, no picture gave me more pleasure
than Jacob's Vision by Domenico Feti. I gazed several minutes at the
grand confusion of clouds and seraphim descending around the patriarch,
and wished for a similar dream.
Having spent the little time I had remaining in contemplating this
object, I hastened from the palace and left Modena.
We traversed a champagne country in our way to Bologna, whose
richness and fertility increased in proportion as we drew near that
celebrated mart of lap-dogs and sausages. A chain of hills commands
the city, variegated with green inclosures and villas innumerable,
almost every one of which has its grove of chestnuts and cypresses. On
the highest acclivity of this range appears the magnificent convent of
Madonna del Monte, embosomed in wood, and joined to the town by a
corridor a league in length. This vast portico, ascending the steeps
and winding amongst the thickets, sometimes concealed and sometimes
visible, produces an effect wonderfully grand and singular. I longed
to have mounted the height by so extraordinary a passage; and hope on
some future day to be better acquainted with Saint Maria del Monte.
At present I thought of little else, to say truth, but what I had
seen at Fiesso; and what I was to hear at Lucca. The anxiety inspired
by the one, and impatience by the other, rendered me shamefully
insensible to the merits of Bologna (where I passed near two hours),
and of which I can add nothing but that it is very much out of humour,
an earthquake and Cardinal Buoncompagni having disarranged both land
and people. For half-a-year the ground continued trembling; and for
these last months, the legate and senators have grumbled and scratched
incessantly; so that, between natural and political commotions, the
Bolognese must have passed an agreeable summer.
Such a report of the situation of things, you may suppose, was not
likely to retard my journey. I put off delivering my letters to
another opportunity; ran up a tall slender tower as high as the
Campanile di San Marco, by way of exercise; and proceeded immediately
after dinner towards the mountains. We were soon in the midst of crags
and stony channels, that stream with ten thousand rills in the winter
season, but during the summer months reflect every sunbeam, and harbour
half the scorpions in the country.
For many a toilsome league our prospect consisted of nothing but
dreary hillocks and intervening wastes, more barren and mournful than
those to which Mary Magdalene retired. Sometimes a crucifix or chapel
peeped out of the parched fern and grasses, with which these desolate
fields are clothed; and now and then we met a goggle-eyed pilgrim
trudging along, and staring about him as if he waited only for night
and opportunity to have additional reasons for hurrying to Jerusalem.
During three or four hours that we continued ascending, the scene
increased in sterility and desolation; but, at the end of our second
post, the landscape began to alter for the better: little green valleys
at the base of tremendous steeps, discovered themselves, scattered over
with oaks, and freshened with running waters, which the nakedness of
the impending rocks set off to advantage. The sides of the cliffs in
general consist of rude misshapen masses; but their summits are smooth
and verdant, and continually browsed by herds of white goats, which
were gambolling on the edge of the precipices as we passed beneath.
I joined one of these frisking assemblies, whose shadows were
stretched by the setting sun along the level herbage. There I sat a
few minutes whilst they shook their beards at me, and tried to scare me
with all their horns; but I was not to be frightened, and would offer
up my adorations to departing day, in spite of their caperings. Being
tired with skipping and butting at me in vain, the whole herd trotted
away, and I after them. They led me a dance from crag to crag and from
thicket to thicket.
It was growing dusky apace, and wreaths of smoke began to ascend from
the mysterious depths of the valleys. I was ignorant what monster
inhabited such retirements, so gave over my pursuit, lest some
Polypheme or other might make me repent it. I looked around, the
carriage was out of sight; but hearing the neighing of horses at a
distance, I soon came up with them, and mounted another rapid ascent,
whence an extensive tract of cliff and forest land was discernible.
The rocks here formed a spacious terrace; along which I continued
surveying the distant groves, and marking the solemn approach of
night. The sky was hung with storms, and a pale moon seemed to advance
with difficulty amongst broken and tempestuous clouds. It was an hour
to reap plants with brazen sickles, and to meditate upon revenge.
A chill wind blew from the highest peak of the Apennines, inspiring
evil, and making a dismal rustle amongst the woods of chestnut that
hung on the mountain's side, through which we were forced to pass. I
never heard such fatal murmurs; nor felt myself so gloomily. I walked
out of the sound of the carriage, where the glimmering moonlight
prevailed, and began interpreting the language of the leaves, not
greatly to my own advantage or that of any being in the universe. I
was no prophet of good, but full of melancholy bodings, and something
that bordered upon despair. Had I but commanded an oracle, as ancient
visionaries were wont, I should have thrown whole nations into dismay.
How long I continued in this strange temper I cannot pretend to say,
but believe it was midnight before we emerged from the oracular forest,
and saw faintly before us the huts of Lognone, where we were to sleep.
This blessed hamlet is suspended on the brow of a bleak mountain, and
every gust that stirs shakes the whole village to its foundations. At
our approach two hags stalked forth with lanterns and invited us with a
grin, which I shall always remember, to a dish of mustard and crow's
gizzards, a dish I was more than half afraid of tasting, lest it should
change me to some bird of darkness, condemned to mope eternally on the
black rafters of the cottage.
After repeated supplications we procured a few eggs, and some faggots
to make a fire. Its blaze gave me courage to hear the hollow blasts
that whistled in the crevices; and pitching my bed in a warm corner, I
soon fell asleep, and forgot all my cares and inquietudes.
September 14th.—The sun had not been long above the
horizon, before we set forward upon a craggy pavement hewn out of the
rough bosom of the cliffs and precipices. Scarce a tree was visible,
and the few that presented themselves began already to shed their
leaves. The raw nipping air of this desert with difficulty spares a
blade of vegetation; and in the whole range of these extensive
eminences I could not discover a single corn-field or pasture.
Inhabitants, you may guess, there were none. I would defy even a
Scotch highlander to find means of subsistence in so rude a soil.
Towards midday, we had surmounted the dreariest part of our journey,
and began to perceive a milder landscape. The climate improved as well
as the prospect, and after a continual descent of several hours, we saw
groves and villages in the dips of the hills, and met a string of mules
and horses laden with fruit. I purchased some figs and peaches from
this little caravan, and spreading my repast upon a bank, baked in the
sunshine, and gathered large spikes of lavender in full bloom.
Continuing our route, we bid adieu to the realms of poverty and
barrenness, and entered a cultivated vale sheltered by woody
acclivities. Among these we wound along, the peasants singing upon the
hill, and driving their cattle to springs by the road's side; near one
of which we dined in a patriarchal manner, and afterwards pursued our
course through a grove of taper cypresses, waving with the cool gales
of the evening. The heights were suffused with a ruddy glow,
proceeding from the light pink clouds which floated on the horizon. No
others were to be seen. All nature seemed in a happy tranquil state;
the herds penned in their folds, and every rustic going to repose. I
shared the general calm for the first time this many a tedious hour;
and traversed the dales in peace, abandoned to flattering hopes and gay
illusions. The full moon shone propitiously upon me as I ascended a
hill, and discovered Florence at a distance, surrounded with gardens
and terraces, rising one above another. The serene moonlight on the
pale grey tints of the olive, gave an Elysian, visionary appearance to
the landscape. I never beheld so mild a sky, nor such soft gleams: the
mountains were veiled in azure mists, which concealed their rugged
summits; and the plains in vapours, that smoothed their irregularities,
and diffused a faint aërial hue, to which no description can render
justice. I could have contemplated such scenery for hours, and was
sorry when I found myself shut up from it by the gates of Florence. We
passed several lofty palaces of the true Tuscan order, with rustic
arcades and stout columns, whose solidity and magnificence were not
diminished by the shades of midnight. Whilst these grand masses lay
dark and solemn, the smooth flagstone, with which every street is
paved, received a chequered gleam, and the Arno, the brightest
radiance. Though tired with my jumble over the Apennines, I could not
resist the temptation of walking upon the banks of so celebrated a
river, and crossing its bridges, which still echoed with music and
conversation. Having gratified the first impulse of curiosity, I
returned to Vaninis, and slept as well as my impatience would allow,
till it was time next morning (September 15th), to visit the gallery,
and worship the Venus de Medicis. I felt, upon entering this world of
taste and elegance, as if I could have taken up my abode in it for
ever; but confused with the multitude of objects, I knew not where to
turn myself, and ran childishly by the ample ranks of sculptures, like
a butterfly in a parterre, that skims before it fixes, over ten
thousand flowers.
Having taken my course down one side of the gallery, I turned the
angle and discovered another long perspective, equally stored with
prodigies of bronze and marble; paintings on the walls, on the
ceilings, in short, everywhere. A minute brought me, vast as it was,
to the extremity of this range; then, flying down a third, adorned in
the same delightful manner, I paused under the bust of Jupiter
Olympius; and began to reflect a little more maturely upon the company
in which I found myself. Opposite, appeared the majestic features of
Minerva, breathing divinity; and Cybele, the mother of the gods.
I bowed low to these awful powers, but seeing a black figure just by,
whose attitude seemed to announce the deity of sleep, I made
immediately up to it. You know my fondness for this drowsy personage,
and that it is not the first time I have quitted the most splendid
society for him. I found him, at present, of touchstone, with the
countenance of a towardly brat, sleeping ill through indigestion. The
artist had not conceived such high ideas of the god as live in my
bosom, or else he never would have represented him with so little grace
or dignity.
Displeased at finding my favourite subject profaned, I perceived the
lively transports of enthusiasm began in some degree to be dissipated,
and I felt myself calm enough to follow the herd of guides and
spectators from chamber to chamber and cabinet to cabinet, without
falling into errors of rapture and inspiration. We were led slowly and
moderately through the large rooms, containing the portraits of
painters, good, bad, and indifferent, from Raffaelle to Liotard; then
into a museum of bronzes, which would afford both amusement and
instruction for years.
To one who can never behold an ancient lamp or tripod without the
associations of those who sacrificed on the one and meditated by the
other, imagine what pleasures such a repository must have communicated.
When I had alarmed, not satisfied, my curiosity by rapidly running
over this multitude of candelabra, urns, and sacred utensils, we
entered a small luminous apartment, surrounded with cases richly
decorated, and filled with the most exquisite models of workmanship in
bronze and various metals, classed in exact order. Here are crowds of
diminutive deities and tutelary lars, to whom the superstition of
former days attributed those midnight murmurs which were believed to
presage the misfortunes of a family. Amongst these now neglected
images are preserved a vast number of talismans, cabalistic amulets,
and other grotesque relics of ancient credulity.
In the centre of the room, I remarked a table, beautifully formed of
polished gems, and, hard by it, the statue of a genius with his
familiar serpent, and all his attributes; the guardian of the treasured
antiquities. From this chamber we were conducted into another, which
opens to that part of the gallery where the busts of Adrian and
Antinous are placed. Two pilasters, delicately carved in trophies and
clusters of ancient armour, stand on each side of the entrance; within
are several perfumed cabinets of miniatures, and a single column of
Oriental alabaster about ten feet in height,
“Lucido e terso, e bianco, più che latte.”
I put my guide's patience to the proof, by remaining much longer than
any one else ever did, in admiring the pillar, and rummaging the
drawers of the cabinets. At last, the musk with which they are
impregnated obliged me to desist, and I moved on to a suite of saloons,
with low arched roofs, glittering with arabesque, in azure and gold.
Several medallions appear amongst the wreaths of foliage, tolerably
well painted, with representations of splendid feasts and tournaments
for which Florence was once so famous.
A vast collection of small pictures, most of them Flemish, covers the
walls of these apartments. But nothing struck me more than a Medusa's
head by that surprising genius Leonardo da Vinci. It appears just
severed from the body, and cast on the damp pavement of a cavern: a
deadly paleness covers the countenance, and the mouth exhales a
pestilential vapour: the snakes, which fill almost the whole picture,
beginning to untwist their folds; one or two seemed already crept away,
and crawling up the rock in company with toads and other venomous
reptiles.
The colouring of these disgustful objects is faithful to a great
degree; the effect of light, prodigious; the whole so masterly that I
could not help entering into this description; though I fear to little
purpose, as words at best convey but a weak idea of objects addressed
to the sight alone.
Here are a great many Polemburgs: one in particular, the strangest I
ever beheld. Instead of those soft scenes of woods and waterfalls he
is in general so fond of representing, he has chosen for his subject
Virgil ushering Dante into the regions of eternal punishment, amidst
the ruins of flaming edifices that glare across the infernal waters.
These mournful towers harbour innumerable shapes, all busy in preying
upon the damned. One capital devil, in the form of an enormous
lobster, seems very strenuously employed in mumbling a miserable
mortal, who sprawls, though in vain, to escape from his claws. This
performance, whimsical as it is, retains all that softness of tint and
delicacy of pencil for which Polemburg is so renowned.
Had not the subject so palpably contradicted the execution as to
become remarkable, I should have passed it over, like a thousand more,
and brought you immediately to the Tribune. I dare say our sensations
were similar on entering this apartment. Need I say I was enchanted
the moment I set my feet within it, and saw full before me the Venus de
Medicis? The warm ivory hue of the original marble is a beauty no copy
has ever imitated, and the softness of the limbs exceeded the liveliest
idea I had formed to myself of their perfection.
Their symmetry every artist is acquainted with; but do you recollect
a faint ruddy cast in the hair, which admirably relieves the whiteness
of the forehead? This circumstance, though perhaps accidental, struck
me as peculiarly charming; it increased the illusion, and helped me to
imagine I beheld a breathing divinity.
When I had taken my eyes reluctantly from this beautiful object, I
cast them upon a Morpheus of white marble, which lies slumbering at the
feet of the goddess in the form of a graceful child. A dormant lion
serves him for a pillow: two ample wings, carved with the utmost
delicacy, are gathered under him; two others, budding from his temples,
half concealed by a flow of lovely ringlets. His languid hands scarce
hold a bunch of poppies: near him creeps a lizard, just yielding to his
influence. Nothing can be more just than the expression of sleep in
the countenance of the little divinity. His lion too seems perfectly
lulled, and rests his muzzle upon his fore-paws as quiet as a domestic
mastiff. I contemplated the god with infinite satisfaction, till I
felt an agreeable sleepiness steal over my senses, and should have
liked very well to doze away a few hours by his side. My ill-humour at
seeing this deity so grossly sculptured in the gallery, was dissipated
by the gracefulness of his appearance in the Tribune. I was now
contented, for the artist, (to whom the Lord give a fair seat in
paradise!) had realized my ideas; and, if I may venture my opinion,
sculpture never arrived to higher perfection, or, at the same time,
kept more justly within its province. Sleeping figures with me always
produce the finest illusion. I easily persuade myself that I behold
the very personage, cast into the lethargic state which is meant to be
represented, and I can gaze whole hours upon them with complacency.
But when I see an archer in the very act of discharging his arrow, a
dancer with one foot in the air, or a gladiator extending his fist to
all eternity, I grow tired, and ask, When will they perform what they
are about? When will the bow twang? the foot come to the ground? or
the fist meet its adversary? Such wearisome attitudes I can view with
admiration, but never with pleasure. The wrestlers, for example, in
the same apartment, filled me with disgust: I cried out, For heaven's
sake! give the throw, and have done. In taking my turn round the
enchanted circle, I discovered still, another Morpheus; stretched
carelessly on a mantle, with poppies in his hands; but no wings grow
from his temples, nor lion supports his head. A moth just issuing from
his chrysalis is the only being which seems to have felt his soporific
influence; whereas the other god I have mentioned may vaunt the glory
of subduing the most formidable of animals.
The morning was gone before I could snatch myself from the Tribune.
In my way home, I looked into the cathedral, an enormous fabric, inlaid
with the richest marbles, and covered with stars and chequered work,
like an old-fashioned cabinet. The architect seems to have turned his
building inside out; nothing in art being more ornamented than the
exterior, and few churches so simple within. The nave is vast and
solemn, the dome amazingly spacious, with the high altar in its centre,
inclosed by a circular arcade near two hundred feet in diameter. There
is something imposing in this decoration, as it suggests the idea of a
sanctuary, into which none but the holy ought to penetrate. However
profane I might feel myself, I took the liberty of entering, and sat
myself down in a niche. Not a ray of light reaches this sacred
inclosure, but through the medium of narrow windows, high in the dome
and richly painted. A sort of yellow tint predominates, which gives
additional solemnity to the altar, and paleness to the votary before
it. I was sensible of the effect, and obtained at least the colour of
sanctity.
Having remained some time in this pious hue, I returned home and
feasted upon grapes and ortolans with great edification; then walked to
one of the bridges across the Arno, and surveyed the hills at a
distance, purpled by the declining sun. Its mild beams tempted me to
the garden of Boboli, which lies behind the Palazzo Pitti, stretched
out on the side of a mountain. I ascended terrace after terrace, robed
by a thick underwood of hay and myrtle, above which rise several
nodding towers, and a long sweep of venerable wall, almost entirely
concealed by ivy. You would have been enraptured with the broad masses
of shade and dusky alleys that opened as I advanced, with white statues
of fauns and sylvans glimmering amongst them; some of which pour water
into sarcophagi of the purest marble, covered with antique relievos.
The capitals of columns and ancient friezes are scattered about as
seats.
On these I reposed myself, and looked up to the cypress groves
spiring above the thickets; then, plunging into their retirements, I
followed a winding path, which led me by a series of steep ascents to a
green platform overlooking the whole extent of wood, with Florence deep
beneath, and the tops of the hills which encircle it, jagged with
pines; here and there a convent, or villa, whitening in the sun. This
scene extends as far as the eye can reach.
Still ascending I attained the brow of the mountain, and had nothing
but the fortress of Belvedere, and two or three open porticos above
me. On this elevated situation, I found several walks of trellis-work,
clothed with luxuriant vines, that produce to my certain knowledge the
most delicious clusters. A colossal statue of Ceres, her hands
extended in the act of scattering fertility over the prospect, crowns
the summit, where I lingered to mark the landscape fade, and the bright
skirts of the western sun die gradually away.
Then descending alley after alley, and bank after bank, I came to the
orangery in front of the palace, disposed in a grand amphitheatre, with
marble niches relieved by dark foliage, out of which spring tall aërial
cypresses. This spot brought the scenery of an antique Roman garden
full into my mind. I expected every instant to be called to the table
of Lucullus hard by, in one of the porticoes, and to stretch myself on
his purple triclinias; but waiting in vain for a summons till the
approach of night, I returned delighted with a ramble that had led me
so far into antiquity.
Friday, September 16th.—My impatience to hear
Pacchierotti called me up with the sun. I blessed a day which was to
give me the greatest of musical pleasures, and travelled gaily towards
Lucca, along a fertile plain, bounded by rocky hills, and scattered
over with towns and villages. We passed Pistoia in haste, and about
three in the afternoon entered the Lucchese territory, by a clean,
paved road, which runs through some of the pleasantest copses
imaginable, bordered with a variety of heaths and broom in blossom.
Sometimes it conducted us down slopes, overgrown with shrubby chestnuts
and arbor vitæ; sometimes between groves of cypresses and pines laden
with cones: a red soil peeping forth from the vegetation adds to the
richness of the landscape, which swells all the way into gentle
acclivities: and at about seven or eight miles from the city spreads
into mountains, green to their very summits, and diversified with
gardens and palaces. A more pleasing scenery can with difficulty be
imagined: I was quite charmed with beholding it, as I knew very well
that the opera would keep me a long while chained down in its
neighbourhood.
Happy for me that the environs of Lucca were so beautiful; since I
defy almost any city to contain more ugliness within its walls. Narrow
streets and dismal alleys; wide gutters and cracked pavements;
everybody in black, like mourners for the gloom of their habitations,
which, however, are large and lofty enough of conscience; but having
all grated windows, they convey none but dark and dungeon-like ideas.
My spirits fell many degrees upon entering this sable capital; and when
I found Friday was meagre day, in every sense of the word, with its
inhabitants, and no opera to be performed, I grew terribly out of
humour, and shut myself up in a chamber of the inn, which, to complete
my misfortune, was crowded with human lumber. Instead of a delightful
symphony, I heard nothing for some time but the clatter of plates and
the swearing of waiters.
Amongst the number of my tormentors was a whole Genoese family of
distinction; very fat and sleek, and terribly addicted to the violin.
Hearing of my fondness for music, they speedily got together a few
scrapers, and began such an academia as drove me to one end of the
room, whilst they possessed the other. The hopes and heir of the
family—a coarse chubby dolt of about eighteen—played out of all
time, and during the interval of repose he gave his elbow, burst out
into a torrent of commonplace, which completed, you may imagine, my
felicity.
Pacchierotti, whom they all worshipped in their heavy way, sat silent
the while in a corner; the second soprano warbled, not absolutely ill,
at the harpsichord; whilst the old lady, young lady, and attendant
females, kept ogling him with great perseverance. Those who could not
get in, squinted through the crevices of the door. Abbés and
greyhounds were fidgeting continually without. In short, I was so
worried that, pleading headaches and lassitudes, I escaped about ten
o'clock, and shook myself when I got safe to my apartment, like a
spaniel just fresh from a dripping copse.
LUCCA, September 25th.
You ask me how I pass my time. Generally upon the hills, in wild
spots where the arbutus flourishes: from whence I may catch a glimpse
of the distant sea; my horse tied to a cypress, and myself cast upon
the grass, like Palmarin of Oliva, with a tablet and pencil in my hand,
a basket of grapes by my side, and a crooked stick to shake down the
chestnuts. I have bidden adieu, several days ago, to the dinners and
glories of the town, and only come thither in an evening, just time
enough for the grand march which precedes Pacchierotti in Quinto
Fabio. Sometimes he accompanies me in my excursions, to the utter
discontent of the Lucchese, who swear I shall ruin their opera, by
leading him such confounded rambles amongst the mountains, and exposing
him to the inclemency of winds and showers. One day they made a
vehement remonstrance, but in vain; for the next, away we trotted over
hill and dale, and stayed so late in the evening, that cold and
hoarseness were the consequence.
The whole republic was thrown into commotion, and some of its prime
ministers were deputed to harangue Pacchierotti upon the rides he had
committed. Billingsgate never produced such furious orators. Had the
safety of their mighty state depended upon this imprudent excursion,
they could not have vociferated with greater violence. You know I am
rather energetic, and, to say truth, I had very nearly got into a
scrape of importance, and drawn down the execrations of the Gonfalonier
and all his council upon my head, in defending him, and in openly
declaring our intention of taking, next morning, another ride over the
rocks, and absolutely losing ourselves in the clouds which veil their
acclivities. These threats were put into execution, and yesterday we
made a tour of about thirty miles upon the highlands, and visited a
variety of castles and palaces.
The Conte Nobili conducted us, a noble Lucchese, but born in Flanders
and educated at Paris. He possesses the greatest elegance of
imagination, and a degree of sensibility rarely met with upon our gross
planet. The way did not appear tedious in such company. The sun was
tempered by light clouds, and a soft autumnal haze rested upon the
hills, covered with shrubs and olives. The distant plains and forests
appeared tinted with deep blue, and I am now convinced the azure so
prevalent in Velvet Breughel's landscapes is not exaggerated.
After riding for six or seven miles along the cultivated levels, we
began to ascend a rough slope, overgrown with chestnuts; here and there
some vines streaming in garlands displayed their clusters. A great
many loose fragments and stumps of ancient pomegranates perplexed our
route, which continued, turning and winding through this sort of
wilderness, till it opened on a sudden to the side of a lofty mountain,
covered with tufted groves, amongst which hangs the princely castle of
the Garzonis, on the very side of a precipice.
Alcina could not have chosen a more romantic situation. The garden
lies extended beneath, gay with flowers, and glittering with
compartments of spar, which, though in no great purity of taste, has an
enchanted effect for the first time. Two large marble basins, with
jet-d'eaux seventy feet in height, divide the parterres; from the
extremity of which rises a rude cliff, shaded with firs and ilex, and
cut into terraces.
Leaving our horses at the great gate of this magic inclosure, we
passed through the spray of the fountains, and mounting an almost
endless flight of steps, entered an alley of oranges, and gathered ripe
fruit from the trees. Whilst we were thus employed, the sun broke from
the clouds, and lighted up the vivid green of the vegetation; at the
same time spangling the waters, which pour copiously down a succession
of rocky terraces, and sprinkle the impending citron-trees with
perpetual dew. These streams issue from a chasm in the cliff,
surrounded by cypresses, which conceal by their thick branches some
pavilions with baths. Above arises a colossal statue of Fame, boldly
carved, and in the very act of starting from the precipices. A narrow
path leads up to the feet of the goddess, on which I reclined; whilst a
vast column of water arched over my head, and fell, without even
wetting me with its spray, into the depths below.
I could with difficulty prevail upon myself to abandon this cool
recess, which the fragrance of bay and orange, extracted by constant
showers, rendered uncommonly luxurious. At last I consented to move
on, through a dark wall of ilex, which, to the credit of Signor Garzoni
be it spoken, is suffered to grow as wild and as forest-like as it
pleases. This grove is suspended on the mountain side, whose summit is
clothed with a boundless wood of olives, and forms, by its azure
colour, a striking contrast with the deep verdure of its base.
After resting a few moments in the shade, we proceeded to a long
avenue (bordered by aloes in bloom, forming majestic pyramids of
flowers thirty feet high), which led us to the palace. This was soon
run over. Then, mounting our horses, we wound amongst sunny vales, and
inclosures with myrtle hedges, till we came to a rapid steep. We felt
the heat most powerfully in ascending it, and were glad to take refuge
under a bower of vines, which runs for miles along its summit, almost
without interruption. These arbours afforded us both shade and
refreshment; I fell upon the clusters which formed our ceiling, like a
native of the north, unused to such luxuriance: one of those Goths
which Gray so poetically describes, who
“Scent the new fragrance of the breathing rose,
And quaff the pendent vintage as it grows.”
I wish you had journeyed with us under this fruitful canopy, and
observed the partial sunshine through its transparent leaves, and the
glimpses of the blue sky it every now and then admitted. I say only
every now and then, for in most places a sort of verdant gloom
prevailed, exquisitely agreeable in so hot a day.
But such luxury did not last, you may suppose, for ever. We were
soon forced from our covert, and obliged to traverse a mountain exposed
to the sun, which had dispersed every cloud, and shone with intolerable
brightness. On the other side of this extensive eminence lies an
agreeable hillock, surrounded by others, woody and irregular. Wide
vineyards and fences of Indian corn lay between, across which the Conte
Nobili conducted us to his house, where we found prepared a very
comfortable dinner. We drank the growth of the spot, and defied
Constantia and the Cape to excel it.
Afterwards, retiring into a wood of the Marchese Mansi, with neat
pebble walks and trickling rivulets, we sipped coffee and loitered till
sunset. It was then time to return: the dews began to fall, and the
mists to rise from the valleys. The profound calm and silence of
evening threw us all three into our reveries. We went pacing along
heedlessly, just as our horses pleased, without hearing any sound but
their steps.
Between nine and ten we entered the gates of Lucca. Pacchierotti
coughed, and half its inhabitants wished us at the devil.
I think now I have detained you long enough with my excursions: you
must require a little repose; for my own part, I am heartily tired. I
intended to say some things about certain owls, amongst other
grievances I am pestered with in this republic; but shall cut them all
short, and wish you good-night; for the opera is already begun, and I
would not miss the first glorious recitative for the empire of
Trebizond.
LIVOURNO, October 2nd.
No sooner were we beyond the gates, than we found ourselves in narrow
roads, shut in by vines and grassy banks of canes and osiers, rising
high above our carriage, and waving their leaves in the air. Through
the openings which sometimes intervene we discovered a variety of
hillocks clothed with shrubberies and verdure, ruined towers looking
out of the bushes, not one without a romantic tale attending it.
This sort of scenery lasted till, passing the baths, we beheld Pisa
rising from an extensive plain, the most open we had as yet seen in
Italy, crossed by an aqueduct. We were set down immediately before the
Duomo, which stands insulated in a verdant opening, and is by far the
most curious and highly finished edifice my eyes ever viewed. Don't
ask of what shape or architecture; it is almost impossible to tell, so
great is the confusion of ornaments. The capitals of the columns and
carvings of the architraves, as well as the form of the arches, are
evidently of Grecian design, but Gothic proportions. The dome gives
the mass an Oriental appearance, which helped to bewilder me; in short,
I have dreamed of such buildings, but little thought they existed. On
one side you survey the famous tower, as perfectly awry as I expected;
on the other the baptistery, a circular edifice distinct from the
church and right opposite its principal entrance, crowded with
sculptures and topped by the strangest of cupolas.
Having indulged our curiosity with this singular prospect for some
moments, we entered the cathedral and admired the stately columns of
porphyry and the rarest marbles, supporting a roof which, like the rest
of the building, shines with gold. A pavement of the brightest mosaic
completes its magnificence: all around are sculptures by M. Ang.
Buonaroti, and paintings by the most distinguished artists. We
examined them all, and then walked down the nave and remarked the
striking effect of the baptistery, seen in perspective through the
bronze portals, which you know, I suppose, are covered with relievos of
the finest workmanship. These noble valves were thrown wide open, and
we passed between to examine the alabaster fount in the baptistery,
constructed after the primitive ritual, and exquisitely wrought. Many
palm trees appear amongst the carved work, which seems to indicate the
former connections of the Pisanese with Palestine.
Our next object was the Campo Santo, which forms one side of the
opening in which the cathedral is situated. The walls, and Gothic
tabernacle above the entrance, rising from a level turf, appear as
fresh as if built within the present century, and, preserving a neat
straw colour, have the cleanest effect imaginable. Our guide unlocking
the gates, we entered a spacious cloister, forming an oblong
quadrangle, enclosing the sacred earth of Jerusalem, conveyed hither
about the period of the crusades, in the days of Pisanese prosperity.
The holy mould produces a rampant crop of weeds, but none are permitted
to spring from the pavement, which is entirely composed of tombs with
slabs and monumental inscriptions smoothly laid. Ranges of slender
pillars, formed of the whitest marble and glistening in the sun,
support the arcades, which are carved with innumerable stars and roses,
partly Gothic and partly Saracenial. Strange paintings of hell and the
devil, mostly taken from Dante's rhapsodies, cover the walls of these
fantastic galleries, attributed to the venerable Giotto and Bufalmacco,
whom Boccace mentions in his “Decamerone.”
Beneath, along the base of the columns, rows of pagan sarcophagi are
placed, to my no small surprise, as I could not have supposed the
Pisanese sufficiently tolerant to admit profane sculptures within such
consecrated precincts. However, there they are, as well as fifty other
contradictory ornaments.
I was quite seized by the strangeness of the place, and paced fifty
times round and round the cloisters, discovering at every time some odd
novelty. When tired, I seated myself on a fair slab of giallo
antico, that looked a little cleaner than its neighbours (which I
only mention to identify the precise point of view), and looking
through the filigreed covering of the arches, observed the domes of the
cathedral, cupola of the baptistery, and roof of the leaning tower
rising above the leads, and forming the strangest assemblage of
pinnacles perhaps in Europe. The place is neither sad nor solemn; the
arches are airy, the pillars light, and there is so much caprice, such
an exotic look in the whole scene, that without any violent effort of
fancy one might imagine one's self in fairyland. Every object is new,
every ornament original; the mixture of antique sarcophagi with Gothic
sepulchres, completes the vagaries of the prospect, to which, one day
or other, I think of returning, to act a visionary part, hear visionary
music, and commune with sprites, for I shall never find in the whole
universe besides so whimsical a theatre. It was between ten and eleven
when we entered the Campo Santo, and one o'clock struck before I could
be persuaded to leave it; and 'twas the sun which then drove me away;
whose heat was so powerful that all the inhabitants of Pisa showed
their wisdom by keeping within doors. Not an animal appeared in the
streets, except five camels laden with water, stalking along a range of
garden walls and pompous mansions, with an awning before every door.
We were obliged to follow their steps, at least a quarter of a mile,
before we reached our inn. Ice was the first thing I sought after, and
when I had swallowed an unreasonable portion, I began not to think
quite so much of the deserts of Africa, as the heat and the camels had
induced me a moment ago.
Early in the afternoon, we proceeded to Livourno through a wild tract
of forest, somewhat in the style of our English parks. The trees in
some places formed such shady arbours, that we could not resist the
desire of walking beneath them, and were well rewarded; for after
struggling through a rough thicket, we entered a lawn hemmed in by oaks
and chestnuts, which extends several leagues along the coast and
conceals the prospect of the ocean; but we heard its murmurs.
Nothing could be smoother or more verdant than the herbage, which was
sprinkled with daisies and purple crocuses, as in the month of May. I
felt all the genial sensations of Spring steal into my bosom, and was
greatly delighted upon discovering vast bushes of myrtle in bloom. The
softness of the air, the sound of the distant surges, the evening
gleams, and repose of the landscape, quieted the tumult of my spirits,
and I experienced the calm of my infant hours. I lay down in the open
turf-walks between the shrubberies, listlessly surveyed the cattle
browsing at a distance, and the blue hills that rose above the foliage,
and bounded the view. During a few moments I had forgotten every care;
but when I began to inquire into my happiness, I found it vanish. I
felt myself without those I love most, in situations they would have
warmly admired, and without them these pleasant meads and woodlands
were of little avail.
We had not left this woody region far behind, when the Fanalè began
to lift itself above the horizon—the Fanalè you have so often
mentioned; the sky and ocean glowing with amber light, and the ships
out at sea appearing in a golden haze, of which we have no conception
in our northern climates. Such a prospect, together with the fresh
gales from the Mediterranean, charmed me; I hurried immediately to the
port and sat on a reef of rocks, listening to the waves that broke
amongst them.
October 3rd.—I went, as you would have done, to walk
on the mole as soon as the sun began to shine upon it. Its
construction you are no stranger to; therefore I think I may spare
myself the trouble of saying anything about it, except that the port
which it embraces is no longer crowded. Instead of ten ranks of
vessels there are only three, and those consist chiefly of Corsican
galleys, that look as poor and tattered as their masters. Not much
attention did I bestow upon such objects, but, taking my seat at the
extremity of the quay, surveyed the smooth plains of ocean, the coast
scattered over with watch-towers, and the rocky isle of Gorgona,
emerging from the morning mists, which still lingered upon the horizon.
Whilst I was musing upon the scene, and calling up all that train of
ideas before my imagination, which possessed your own upon beholding
it, an ancient figure, with a beard that would have suited a sea-god,
stepped out of a boat, and tottering up the steps of the quay,
presented himself before me with a basket in his hand. He stayed
dripping a few moments before he pronounced a syllable, and when he
began his discourse, I was in doubt whether I should not have moved off
in a hurry, there was something so wan and singular in his
countenance. Except this being, no other was visible for a quarter of
a mile at least. I knew not what strange adventure I might be upon the
point of commencing, or what message I was to expect from the submarine
divinities. However, after all my conjectures, the figure turned out
to be no other than an old fisherman, who, having picked up a few large
branches of red coral, offered them to sale. I eagerly made the
purchase, and thought myself a favourite of Neptune, since he allowed
me to acquire for next to nothing some of his most beautiful ornaments.
My bargain thus expeditiously finished, I ran along the quay with my
basket of coral, and, jumping into a boat, was rowed back to the gate
of the port. The carriage waited there; I filled it with jasmine, shut
myself up in the shade of the green blinds, and was driven away at a
rate that favoured my impatience. We bowled smoothly over the lawns I
attempted describing in my last letter, amongst myrtles in flower, that
would have done honour to the island of Juan Fernandes.
Arrived at Pisa, I scarcely allowed myself a moment to revisit the
Campo Santo, but, after taking my usual portion of ice and
pomegranate-seeds, hurried on to Lucca as fast as horses could carry
me, threw the whole idle town into a stare by my speedy return, and
gave myself up to Q. Fabio.
Next day (October 4th) was passed in running over my old haunts upon
the hills, and bidding farewell to several venerable chestnuts, for
which I had contracted a sort of friendship by often experiencing their
protection. I could not help feeling some melancholy sensation when I
turned round the last time to bid them adieu. Who knows but some dryad
enclosed within them was conscious of my gratitude, and noted it down
on the bark of her tree? It was late before I finished my excursion,
and soon after I had walked as usual upon the ramparts the opera began.
FLORENCE, October 5th.
It was not without regret that I forced myself from Lucca. We had
all the same road to go over again, that brought us to this important
republic, but we broke down by way of variety. The wind was chill, the
atmosphere damp and clogged with unwholesome vapours, through which we
were forced to walk for a league, whilst our chaise lagged after us.
Taking shelter in a miserable cottage, we remained shivering and
shaking till the carriage was in some sort of order, and then proceeded
so slowly that we did not arrive at Florence till late in the evening.
We found an apartment over the Arno prepared for our reception. The
river, swollen with rains, roared like a mountain torrent. Throwing
open my windows, I viewed its agitated course by the light of the moon,
half concealed in stormy clouds, which hung above the fortress of the
Belvedere, and cast a lowering gleam over the hills, which rise above
the town, and wave with cypress. I sat contemplating the effect of the
shadows on the bridge, on the heights of Boboli, and the mountain
covered with pale olive groves, amongst which a convent is situated,
till the moon sunk into the darkest quarter of the sky, and a bell
began to toll. Its sullen sound filled me with sadness. I closed the
casements, called for lights, ran to a harpsichord Vannini had prepared
for me, and played somewhat in the strain of Jomelli's Miserere.
October 6th.—Every cloud was dispersed when I arose;
the sunbeams glittered on the stream, and the purity and transparency
of the tether added new charms to the woody eminences around. Such was
the clearness of the air that even objects on the distant mountains
were distinguishable. I felt quite revived by the exhilarating
prospect, and walked in the splendour of sunshine to the porticos
beneath the famous gallery; then to an ancient castle, raised in the
days of the republic, which fronts the grand piazza: colossal statues
and venerable terms are placed before it. On one side a fountain clung
round with antique figures of bronze, by John of Bologna, so admirably
wrought as to hold me several minutes in astonishment; on the other,
three lofty Gothic arches, and under one of them the Perseus of
Benvenuto Cellini, raised on a pedestal, incomparably designed and
executed; which I could not behold uninterested, since its author has
ever occupied a distinguished place in my kalendar of genius. Having
examined some groups of sculptures, by Baccio Bandinelli and other
mighty artists, I entered the court of the castle, dark and deep, as if
hewn out of a rock; surrounded by a vaulted arcade, covered with
arabesque ornaments, and supported by pillars as uncouthly carved as
those of Persepolis. In the midst appears a marble fount with an image
of bronze, that looks quite strange and cabalistic. I leaned against
it, to look up to the summits of the walls, which rise to a vast
height, from whence springs a slender tower. Above, in the apartments
of the castle, were preserved numbers of curious cabinets, tables of
inlaid gems, and a thousand rarities, collected by the house of Medici,
but exposed by the present sovereign of Tuscany to public sale.
It was not without indignation that I learnt this new mark of
contempt which the Austrians bestow on the memory of those illustrious
patrons of the Arts; whom, being unwilling to imitate, they affect to
despise as a race of merchants, whose example it would be abasing their
dignity to follow.
I could have stayed much longer to enjoy the novelty and strangeness
of the place; but it was right to pay some compliments of form. That
duty over, I dined in peace and solitude, read over your letters, and
repaired, as evening drew on, to the thickets of Boboli.
What a serene sky! what mellowness in the tints of the mountains! A
purple haze concealed the bases, whilst their summits were invested
with saffron light, discovering every white cot and every copse that
clothed their declivities. The prospect widened as I ascended the
terraces of the garden.
After traversing many long alleys, brown with impending foliage, I
emerged into a green opening on the brow of the hill, and seated myself
under the statue of Ceres. From this high point I surveyed the mosaic
cupola of the Duomo, its quaint turret, and one still more grotesque in
its neighbourhood, built not improbably in the style of ancient
Etruria. Beyond this singular group of buildings a plain stretches
itself far and wide, most richly scattered over with villas, gardens,
and groves of pine and olive, quite to the feet of the mountains.
After I had marked the sun's going down, I went through a plat of
vines hanging on the steeps, to a little eminence, round which the wood
grows wilder and more luxuriant, and the cypresses shoot up to a
surprising elevation. The pruners have spared this sylvan corner, and
suffered the bays to put forth their branches, and the ilex to dangle
over the walks, many of whose entrances are nearly overgrown. I
enjoyed the gloom of these shady arbours, in the midst of which rises a
lofty pavilion with galleries running round it, not unlike the idea one
forms of Turkish chiosks. Beneath lies a garden of vines and
rose-trees, which I visited, and found a spring under a rustic arch of
grotto-work, fringed round with ivy. Millions of fish inhabit here, of
that beautiful glittering species which comes from China. This golden
nation were leaping after insects, as I stood gazing upon the deep,
clear water, and listening to the drops that trickle from the cove.
Opposite to which, at the end of an alley of vines, you discover an
oval bason, and in the midst of it a statue of Ganymede, sitting
reclined upon the eagle, full of that graceful languor so peculiarly
Grecian. Whilst I was musing on the margin of the spring (for I
returned to it after casting a look upon the sculpture), the moon rose
above the tufted foliage of the terraces. Her silver brightness was
strongly contrasted by the deep green of the holm-oak and bay, amongst
which I descended by several flights of stairs, with neat marble
balustrades crowned by vases of aloes.
It was about seven o'clock, and everybody was jumbling to my Lord
T—-'s, who lives in a fine house all over blue and silver, with
stuffed birds, alabaster cupids, and a thousand prettinesses more; but,
after all, neither he nor his abode are worth mentioning. I found a
deal of slopping and sipping of tea going forwards, and many dawdlers
assembled.
As I can say little good of the party, I had better shut the door,
and conduct you to the opera, which is really a striking spectacle.
However, it being addressed to the sight alone, I was soon tired, and
gave myself up to conversation. Bedini, first soprano, put my patience
to severe proof, during the few minutes I attended. You never beheld
such a porpoise. If these animals were to sing, I should conjecture it
would be in his style. You may suppose how often I invoked
Pacchierotti, and regretted the lofty melody of Quinto Fabio.
Everybody seemed as well contented as if there were no such thing as
good music in the world, except a Neapolitan duchess, who delighted me
by her vivacity. We took our fill of maledictions, and went home
equally pleased with each other for having mutually execrated both
singers and audience.
October 22nd.—They say the air is worse this year at
Rome than ever, and that it would be madness to go thither during its
malign influence. This was very bad news indeed to one heartily tired
of Florence, at least of its society. Merciful powers! what a set
harbour within its walls! * * * * * You may imagine I do not take vast
or vehement delight in this company, though very ingenious,
praiseworthy, etc. The woods of the Cascini shelter me every morning;
and there grows an old crooked ilex at their entrance, twisting round a
pine, upon whose branches I sit for hours,—hear, without feeling, the
showers trickling above my head, and see the cattle browsing peacefully
in their pastures, which hazel copses, Italian pines, and groves of
cypress enclose.
In the afternoon I never fail hiding myself in the thickets of
Boboli, and marking the golden glimmer of sunset between their leaves.
The other evening I varied my walks, and ascended one of those pleasant
hills {214} which
rise in the vicinity of the city, and command a variegated scene of
spires, towns, villas, cots, and gardens. On the right, as you stand
upon the brow, appears Fesule with its turrets and white houses,
covering a rocky mount; to the left, the vast Val d'Arno lost in
immensity. A Franciscan convent stands on the summit of the eminence,
wrapped up in ancient cypresses, which hinder its holy inhabitants from
seeing too much of so gay a view. The paved ascent leading up to their
abode receives also a shade from the cypresses which border it.
Beneath which venerable avenue, crosses with inscriptions are placed at
stated distances, to mark the various moments of Christ's passion; as
when fainting under His burden He halted to repose Himself, or when He
met His afflicted mother (“Giesu incontra la fua afflitta madre").
Above, at the end of the perspective, rises a chapel designed with
infinite taste and simple elegance by M. A. Buonarotti. Further on, an
ancient church, in the corrupt Greek style of the primitive Christians,
incrusted with white marble, porphyry, and verd antique. The interior
presents a crowded assemblage of ornaments, elaborate mosaic pavements,
and inlaid work without end. The high altar, placed in a semicircular
recess, which reminded me of the church at Torcello, glitters with
barbaric paintings on a gold ground, and receives the strongest glow of
light imaginable from five windows, filled up with transparent marble
clouded like tortoiseshell. A smooth polished staircase leads to this
sacred place: another brought me to a subterraneous chapel, supported
by confused groups of variegated pillars, just visible by the glimmer
of lamps. I thought of the Zancaroon at Cordova, and began reciting
the first verses of the Koran.
Passing on not unawed, I followed some flights of steps, which
terminate in the neat cloisters of the convent, in perfect
preservation, but totally deserted. Ranges of citron and aloes fill up
the quadrangle, whose walls are hung with superstitious pictures most
singularly fancied. The Jesuits were the last tenants of this
retirement, and seem to have had great reason for their choice. Its
peace and stillness delighted me.
Next day a very opposite scene engaged me, though much against my
will. Her R. H. the G. Duchess having produced a princess in the
night, everybody put on grand gala in the morning, and I was carried,
along with the glittering tide of courtiers, ministers, and ladies, to
see the christening. After hearing the Grand Duke talk politics for
some time, the doors of a temporary chapel were thrown open. Trumpets
flourished, processions marched, and the archbishop began his business
at an altar of massive gold, placed under a yellow silk pavilion, with
pyramids of lights before it. Wax tapers, though it was noon-day,
shone in every corner of the apartments. Two rows of pages, gorgeously
accoutred, and holding enormous torches, stood on each side his Royal
Highness, and made him the prettiest courtesies imaginable, to the
sound of an execrable band of music, though led by Nardini. The poor
old archbishop, who looked very piteous and saint-like, struck up the
Te Deum with a quavering voice, and the rest followed him full gallop.
That ceremony being despatched (for his R. H. was in a mighty fidget
to shrink back into his beloved obscurity), the crowd dispersed, and I
went, with a few others, to dine at my Lord Tilney's.
Evening drawing on, I ran to throw myself into the woods of Boboli,
and remained till it was night in their profound recesses. Really this
garden is enough to bewilder an enthusiastic spirit; there is something
so solemn in its shades, its avenues, and spires of cypresses. When I
had mused for many a melancholy hour amongst them, I emerged into the
orangery before the palace, which overlooks the largest district of the
town, and beheld, as I slowly descended the road which leads up to it,
certain bright lights glancing across the cupola of the Duomo and the
points of the highest towers. At first I thought them meteors, or
those illusive fires which often dance before the eye of my
imagination; but soon I was convinced of their reality: for in a few
minutes the battlements of the old castle, which I remember mentioning
in a former letter, shone with lamps; the lantern of the cathedral was
lighted up on a sudden; whilst a stream of torches ran along its
fantastic turrets.
I enjoyed this prospect at a distance: when near, its pleasure was
greatly diminished, for half the fish in the town were frying to
rejoice the hearts of H. R. Highness's loyal subjects, and bonfires
blazing in every street and alley. Hubbubs and stinks of every
denomination drove me quickly to the theatre; but that was all glitter
and glare. No taste, no arrangement, paltry looking-glasses, and
rat's-tail candles. I had half a mind to return to Boboli.
October 23rd.—Do you recollect our evening rambles
last year upon the hill of pines? and the dark valley where we used to
muse in the twilight? I remember we often fancied the scene like
Valombrosa; and vowed, if ever an occasion offered, to visit that deep
retirement. I had put off the execution of this pilgrimage from day to
day till the warm weather was gone; and the Florentines declared I
should be frozen if I attempted it. Everybody stared last night at the
opera when I told them I was going to bury myself in fallen leaves, and
hear no music but their rustlings.
Mr. —- was just as eager as myself to escape the chit-chat and
nothingness of Florence; so we finally determined upon our expedition,
and mounting our horses, set out this morning, happily without any
company but the spirit which led us along. We had need of inspiration,
since nothing else, I think, would have tempted us over such dreary,
uninteresting hillocks as rise from the banks of the Arno. The hoary
olive is their principal vegetation; so that Nature, in this part of
the country, seems in a withering decrepit state, and may not unaptly
be compared to “an old woman clothed in grey.” However, we did not
suffer the prospect to damp our enthusiasm, which was the better
preserved for Valombrosa.
About half way, our palfreys thought proper to look out for some
oats, and I to creep into a sort of granary in the midst of a barren
waste, scattered over with white rocks, that reflected more heat than I
cared for, although I had been told snow and ice were to be my
portion. Seating myself on the floor between heaps of corn, I reached
down a few purple clusters of Muscadine grapes, which hung to dry in
the ceiling, and amused myself very pleasantly with them till the
horses had finished their meal and it was lawful to set forwards. We
met with nothing but rocky steeps shattered into fragments, and such
roads as half inclined us to repent our undertaking; but cold was not
yet amongst the number of our evils.
At last, after ascending a tedious while, we began to feel the wind
blow sharp from the peaks of the mountains, and to hear the murmur of
the forests of pine which shade their acclivities. A paved path leads
across them, quite darkened by boughs, which, meeting over our heads,
cast a gloom and a chill below, that would have stopped the proceedings
of reasonable mortals, and sent them to bask in the plain; but, being
not so easily discomfited, we threw ourselves boldly into the forest.
It presented one of those confusions of tall straight stems I am so
fond of, and exhaled a fresh aromatic odour that revived my spirits.
The cold to be sure was piercing; but setting that at defiance, we
galloped on, and issued shortly into a vast amphitheatre of lawns and
meadows, surrounded by thick woods beautifully green. Flocks of sheep
were dispersed on the slopes, whose smoothness and verdure equal our
English pastures. Steep cliffs and mountains, clothed with beech to
their very summits, guard this retired valley. The herbage, moistened
by streams which fall from the eminences, has never been known to fade;
and, whilst the chief part of Tuscany is parched by the heats of
summer, these upland meadows retain the freshness of spring. I
regretted not having visited them sooner, as autumn had already made
great havoc amongst the foliage. Showers of leaves blew full in our
faces as we rode towards the convent, placed at an extremity of the
vale, and sheltered by remote firs and chestnuts towering one above
another.
Alighting before the entrance, two fathers came out and received us
into the peace of their retirement. We found a blazing fire, and
tables spread very comfortably before it, round which five or six
overgrown friars were lounging, who seemed, by the sleekness and rosy
hue of their countenances, not totally to have despised this mortal
existence.
My letters of recommendation soon brought the heads of the order
about me, fair round figures, such as a Chinese would have placed in
his pagoda. I could willingly have dispensed with their attention; yet
to avoid this was scarcely within the circle of possibility. All
dinner we endured the silliest questions imaginable; but that
despatched, away flew your humble servant to the fields and forests.
The fathers made a shift to waddle after, as fast and as complaisantly
as they were able, but were soon distanced.
Now, I found myself at liberty, and ran up a narrow path overhung by
rock, with bushy chestnuts starting from the crevices. This led me
into wild glens of beech trees, mostly decayed and covered with moss:
several were fallen. It was amongst these the holy hermit Gualbertus
had his cell. I rested a moment upon one of their huge branches,
listening to the roar of a waterfall which the wood concealed; then
springing up, I clambered over crags and fragments, guided by the
sound, and presently discovered a full stream, precipitating itself
down a cliff of pine, amongst which I remained several minutes,
watching the fallen floods; till, tired with their endless succession,
I plunged into the thickest of the grove. A beech received me, like a
second Gualbertus, in its hollow trunk. The dry leaves chased each
other down the steeps on the edge of the torrents with hollow
rustlings, whilst the solemn wave of the forests above exactly answered
the idea I had formed of Valombrosa,
“ . . . where th' Etrurian shades
High overarch't imbowr.”
The scene was beginning to take effect, and the genius of Milton to
move across his favourite valley, when the fathers arrived puffing and
blowing, by an easier ascent than I knew of. Pardon me, if I cursed
their intrusion, and wished them as still as Gualbertus.
“You have missed the way,” cried the youngest; “the hermitage, with
the fine picture by Andrea del Sarto, which all the English admire, is
on the opposite side of the wood: there don't you see it on the point
of the cliff?”
“Yes, yes,” said I a little peevishly; “I wonder the devil has not
pushed it down long ago; it seems to invite his kick.”
“Satan,” answered the old Pagod very dryly, “is full of malice; but
whoever drinks of a spring which the Lord causeth to flow near the
hermitage is freed from his illusions.”
“Are they so?” replied I with a sanctified accent; “then prithee
conduct me thither, for I have great need of such salutary waters,
being troubled with strange fancies and imaginations, such as the evil
one himself ought to be ashamed of inspiring.”
The youngest father shook his head, as much as to say, “This is
nothing more than a heretic's whim.”
The senior—muddled, I conjecture—set forwards with greater piety,
and began some legendary tales of the kind which my soul loveth: rare
stories of caves and dens of the earth, inhabited by ancient men
familiar with spirits, and not the least discomposed by a party of
angels coming to dinner, or playing a game at miracles to pass away the
evening. He pointed to a chasm in the cliff, round which we were
winding by a spiral path, where Gualbertus used to sleep, and, turning
himself towards the west, see a long succession of saints and martyrs
sweeping athwart the sky, and gilding the clouds with far brighter
splendours than the setting sun. Here he rested till his last hour,
when the bells of the convent beneath (which till that moment would
have made dogs howl, had there been any within its precincts) struck
out such harmonious jingling that all the country around was ravished,
and began lifting up their eyes with singular devotion, when, behold!
cherubim appeared, light dawned, and birds chirped, although it was
midnight. Alas! alas! what would I not give to witness such a
spectacle, and read my prayer-book by the effulgence of opening heaven!
However, willing to see something at least, I crept into the
consecrated cleft, and extended myself on its rugged surface. A very
penitential couch! but commanding glorious prospects of the world
below, which lay this evening in deep blue shade; the sun looking red
and angry through misty vapours, which prevented our discovering the
Tuscan sea.
Finding the rock as damp as might be expected, I soon shifted my
quarters, and followed the youngest father up to the Romitorio, a snug
little hermitage, with a neat chapel, and altar-piece by Andrea del
Sarto, which I should have more minutely examined in any other place,
but where the wild scenery of hanging woods and meadows, steep hills
and nodding precipices, possessed my whole attention. I just stayed to
taste the holy fountain; and then, escaping from my conductors, ran
eagerly down the path, leaping over the springs that crossed it, and
entered a lawn of the smoothest turf, grazed by sheep, and swelling
into gentle acclivities, skirted by groves of fir, whose solemn verdure
formed a contrast with its tender green. Beyond this pleasant opening
rises a second, hemmed in with copses; and still higher, a third,
whence a forest of young pines spires up into a lofty theatre
terminated by peaks, universally concealed under a thick mantle of
beech, tinged with ruddy brown. Pausing in the midst of the lawns, and
looking upward to the sweeps of wood which surrounded me, I addressed
my orisons to the genius of the place, and prayed that I might once
more return into its bosom, and be permitted to bring you along with
me, for surely such meads, such groves, were formed for our enjoyment!
This little rite performed, I walked on quite to the extremity of the
pastures, traversed a thicket, and found myself on the edge of
precipices, beneath whose base the whole Val d'Arno lies expanded. I
listened to distant murmurings in the plain, saw smoke rise from the
cottages, and viewed a vast tract of barren country, which evening
rendered still more desolate, bounded by the high mountain of
Radicofani. Then, turning round, I beheld the whole extent of rock and
forest, the groves of beech, and wilds above the convent, glowing with
fiery red, for the sun, making a last effort to pierce the vapours,
produced this effect; which was the more striking, as the sky was dark,
and the rest of the prospect of a melancholy blue.
Returning slowly homeward, I marked the warm glow deserting the
eminences, and heard the bell toll sullenly to vespers. The young boys
of the seminary were moving in a body to their dark inclosure, all
dressed in black. Many of them looked pale and wan. I wished to ask
them whether the solitude of Valombrosa suited their age and vivacity;
but a tall spectre of a priest drove them along like a herd, and
presently, the gates opening, I saw them no more. A sadness I could
scarcely account for came over me. I shivered at the bare idea of
being cooped up in such a place, and seeing no other living objects
than scarecrow priests and friars; to hear every day the same dull
service and droning organ; view the same cloisters; be led the same
walks; watched, cribbed, confined, and filled with superstitious fears.
The night was growing chill, the winds boisterous, and in the
intervals of the gusts I had the addition of a lamentable screech-owl
to raise my spirits. Upon the whole, I was not at all concerned to
meet the fathers, who came out to show me to my room, and entertain me
with various gossipings, both sacred and profane, till supper appeared.
Next morning, the Padre Decano gave us chocolate in his apartment;
and afterwards led us round the convent, insisting most unmercifully
upon our viewing every cell and every dormitory. However, I was
determined to make a full stop at the organ, which is perhaps the most
harmonious I ever played upon; but placed in a dark, dingy recess,
feebly lighted by lamps, not calculated to inspire triumphant
voluntaries. The monks, who had all crowded around me when I first
began, in expectation of brisk jigs and lively overtures, soon took
themselves away upon hearing a strain ten times more sorrowful than
that to which they were accustomed. I did not lament their departure,
but played dismally on till our horses came round to the gate. We
mounted, spurred back through the grove of pines which protect
Valombrosa from intrusion, descended the steeps, and, gaining the
plains, galloped in three hours to Florence.
SIENNA, October 26th.
At last fears were overcome, the epidemical fever at Rome allowed to
be no longer dangerous, and myself permitted to quit Florence. The
weather was neither gay nor dismal; the country neither fine nor ugly;
and your friend full as indifferent as the scenes he looked at.
Towards afternoon, a thunderstorm gave character to the landscape, and
we entered a narrow vale enclosed by rocks, with streams running at
their base. Poplars with faded yellow leaves sprung from the margins
of the rivulets, which seemed to lose themselves in the ruins of a
castle, built in the Gothic times. Our road led through its court and
passed the ancient keep, still darkened by its turrets; a few mud
cottages are scattered about the opening where formerly the chieftain
exercised his vassals, and trained them to war. The dungeon, once
filled with miserable victims, serves only at present to confine a few
goats, which were milking before its entrance. As we were driven along
under a tottering gateway, and then through a plain and up a hill, the
breeze whispering amongst the fern which covers it, I felt the sober
autumnal cast of the evening bring back the happy hours I passed last
year at this very time, calm and sequestered. Full of these
recollections, my eyes closed of their own accord, and were not opened
for many hours; in short, till we entered Sienna.
October 27th.—Here my duty of course was to see the
cathedral, and I got up much earlier than I wished, in order to perform
it. I wonder our holy ancestors did not choose a mountain at once,
scrape it into shrines, and chisel it into scripture stories. It would
have cost them almost as little trouble as the building in question,
which may certainly be esteemed a masterpiece of ridiculous taste and
elaborate absurdity. The front, incrusted with alabaster, is worked
into a million of fretted arches and puzzling ornaments. There are
statues without number and relievos without end.
The church within is all of black and white marble alternately; the
roof blue and gold, with a profusion of silken banners hanging from it;
and a cornice running above the principal arcade, composed entirely of
bustos representing the whole series of sovereign pontiffs, from the
first Bishop of Rome to Adrian the Fourth. Pope Joan figured amongst
them, between Leo the Fourth and Benedict the Third, till the year
1600, when she was turned out, at the instance of Clement the Eighth,
to make room for Zacharias the First.
I hardly knew which was the nave, or which the cross aisle, of this
singular edifice, so perfect is the confusion of its parts. The
pavement demands attention, being inlaid so curiously as to represent
variety of histories taken from Holy Writ, and designed in the true
style of that hobgoblin tapestry which used to bestare the halls of our
ancestors. Near the high altar stands the strangest of pulpits,
supported by polished pillars of granite, rising from lions' backs,
which serve as pedestals. In every corner of the place some chapel or
other offends or astonishes you. That, however, of the Chigi family,
it must be allowed, has infinite merit with respect to design and
execution; but it is so lost in general disorder as to want the best
part of its effect.
From the church one enters a vaulted chamber, erected by the
Picolominis, filled with valuable missals most exquisitely
illuminated. The paintings in fresco on the walls are rather
barbarous, though executed after the designs of the mighty Raffaelle;
but then, we must remember, he had but just escaped from Pietro
Perugino.
Not staying long in the Duomo, we left Sienna in good time; and,
after being shaken and tumbled in the worst roads that were ever
pretended to be made use of, found ourselves beneath the rough
mountains round Radicofani, about seven o'clock on a cold and dismal
evening. Up we toiled a steep craggy ascent, and reached at length the
inn upon its summit. My heart sunk when I entered a vast range of
apartments, with high black rafted roofs, once intended for a hunting
palace of the Grand Dukes, but now desolate and forlorn. The wind
having risen, every door began to shake, and every board substituted
for a window to clatter, as if the severe power who dwells on the
topmost peak of Radicofani, according to its village mythologists, was
about to visit his abode. My only spell to keep him at a distance was
kindling an enormous fire, whose charitable gleams cheered my spirits,
and gave them a quicker flow. Yet, for some minutes, I never ceased
looking, now to the right, now to the left, up at the dark beams, and
down the long passages, where the pavement, broken up in several
places, and earth newly strewn about, seemed to indicate that something
horrid was concealed below.
A grim fraternity of cats kept whisking backwards and forwards in
these dreary avenues, which I am apt to imagine is the very identical
scene of a sabbath of witches at certain periods. Not venturing to
explore them, I fastened my door, pitched my bed opposite the hearth,
which glowed with embers, and crept under the coverlids, hardly
venturing to go to sleep, lest I should be suddenly roused from it by
the sudden glare of torches, and be more initiated than I wished into
the mysteries of the place.
Scarce was I settled, before two or three of the brotherhood just
mentioned stalked in at a little opening under the door. I insisted
upon their moving off faster than they had entered, suspecting that
they would soon turn wizards, and was surprised, when midnight came, to
hear nothing more than their mewings, doleful enough, and echoed by the
hollow walls and arches.
RADICOFANI, October 28th.
I begin to despair of magical adventures, since none happened at
Radicofani, which Nature seems wholly to have abandoned. Not a tree,
not an acre of soil, has she bestowed upon its inhabitants, who would
have more excuse for practising the gloomy art than the rest of
mankind. I was very glad to leave their black hills and stony
wilderness behind, and, entering the Papal territory, to see some
shrubs and corn-fields at a distance, near Aquapadente, which is
situated on a ledge of cliffs, mantled with chestnut copses and tufted
ilex. The country grew varied and picturesque. St. Lorenzo, the next
post, built upon a hill, overlooks the lake of Bolsena, whose woody
shores conceal many ruined buildings. We passed some of them in a
retired vale, with arches from rock to rock, and grottos beneath half
lost in thickets, from which rise craggy pinnacles crowned by
mouldering towers; just such scenery as Polemburg and Peter de Laer
introduce in their paintings.
Beyond these truly Italian prospects, which a mellow evening tint
rendered still more interesting, a forest of oaks presents itself upon
the brows of hills, which extends almost the whole way to Monte
Fiascone. It was late before we ascended it. The whole country seems
full of inhabited caverns, that began as night drew on to shine with
fires. We saw many dark shapes glancing before them, and perhaps a
subterraneous people like the Cimmerians lurk in their recesses. As we
drew near Viterbo, the lights in the fields grew less and less
frequent; and when we entered the town, all was total darkness.
To-morrow I hope to pay my vows before the high altar of St. Peter,
and tread the Vatican. Why are you not here to usher me into the
imperial city: to watch my first glance of the Coliseo: and lead me up
the stairs of the Capitol? I shall rise before the sun, that I may see
him set from Monte Cavallo.
ROME, October 29th.
We set out in the dark. Morning dawned over the Lago di Vico; its
waters of a deep ultramarine blue, and its surrounding forests catching
the rays of the rising sun. It was in vain I looked for the cupola of
St. Peter's upon descending the mountains beyond Viterbo. Nothing but
a sea of vapours was visible.
At length they rolled away, and the spacious plains began to show
themselves, in which the most warlike of nations reared their seat of
empire. On the left, afar off, rises the rugged chain of Apennines,
and on the other side, a shining expanse of ocean terminates the view.
It was upon this vast surface so many illustrious actions were
performed, and I know not where a mighty people could have chosen a
grander theatre. Here was space for the march of armies, and verge
enough for encampments. Levels for martial games, and room for that
variety of roads and causeways that led from the capital to Ostia. How
many triumphant legions have trodden these pavements! how many captive
kings! What throngs of cars and chariots once glittered on their
surface! savage animals dragged from the interior of Africa; and the
ambassadors of Indian princes, followed by their exotic train,
hastening to implore the favour of the senate!
During many ages, this eminence commanded almost every day such
illustrious scenes; but all are vanished: the splendid tumult is passed
away; silence and desolation remain. Dreary flats thinly scattered
over with ilex, and barren hillocks crowned by solitary towers, were
the only objects we perceived for several miles. Now and then we
passed a few black ill-favoured sheep feeding by the way-side, near a
ruined sepulchre, just such animals as an ancient would have sacrificed
to the Manes. Sometimes we crossed a brook, whose ripplings were the
only sounds which broke the general stillness, and observed the
shepherds' huts on its banks, propped up with broken pedestals and
marble friezes. I entered one of them, whose owner was abroad tending
his herds, and began writing upon the sand, and murmuring a melancholy
song. Perhaps the dead listened to me from their narrow cells. The
living I can answer for: they were far enough removed.
You will not be surprised at the dark tone of my musings in so sad a
scene, especially as the weather lowered; and you are well acquainted
how greatly I depend upon skies and sunshine. To-day I had no blue
firmament to revive my spirits; no genial gales, no aromatic plants to
irritate my nerves and give me at least a momentary animation. Heath
and furze were the sole vegetation which covers this endless
wilderness. Every slope is strewed with the relics of a happier
period; trunks of trees, shattered columns, cedar beams, helmets of
bronze, skulls and coins, are frequently dug up together.
I cannot boast of having made any discoveries, nor of sending you any
novel intelligence. You knew before how perfectly the environs of Rome
were desolate, and how completely the Papal government contrives to
make its subjects miserable. But who knows that they were not just as
wretched in those boasted times we are so fond of celebrating? All is
doubt and conjecture in this frail existence; and I might as well
attempt proving to whom belonged the mouldering bones which lay
dispersed around me, as venture to affirm that one age is more
fortunate than another. Very likely the poor cottager, under whose
roof I reposed, is happier than the luxurious Roman upon the remains of
whose palace, perhaps, his shed is raised: and yet that Roman
flourished in the purple days of the empire, when all was wealth and
splendour, triumph and exultation.
I could have spent the whole day by the rivulet, lost in dreams and
meditations; but recollecting my vow, I ran back to the carriage and
drove on. The road not having been mended, I believe, since the days
of the Cæsars, would not allow our motions to be very precipitate.
“When you gain the summit of yonder hill, you will discover Rome,” said
one of the postillions: up we dragged; no city appeared. “From the
next,” cried out a second; and so on from height to height did they
amuse my expectations. I thought Rome fled before us, such was my
impatience, till at last we perceived a cluster of hills with green
pastures on their summits, inclosed by thickets and shaded by
flourishing ilex. Here and there a white house, built in the antique
style, with open porticos, that received a faint gleam of the evening
sun, just emerged from the clouds and tinting the meads below. Now
domes and towers began to discover themselves in the valley, and St.
Peter's to rise above the magnificent roofs of the Vatican. Every step
we advanced the scene extended, till, winding suddenly round the hill,
all Rome opened to our view.
A spring flowed opportunely into a marble cistern close by the way;
two cypresses and a pine waved over it. I leaped up, poured water upon
my hands, and then, lifting them up to the sylvan Genii of the place,
implored their protection. I wished to have run wild in the fresh
fields and copses above the Vatican, there to have remained till fauns
might creep out of their concealment, and satyrs begin to touch their
flutes in the twilight, for the place looks still so wondrous
classical, that I can never persuade myself either Constantine Attila
or the Popes themselves have chased them all away. I think I should
have found some out, who would have fed me with milk and chestnuts,
have sung me a Latian ditty, and mourned the woeful changes which have
taken place, since their sacred groves were felled, and Faunus ceased
to be oracular. Who can tell but they would have given me some mystic
skin to sleep on, that I might have looked into futurity?
Shall I ever forget the sensations I experienced upon slowly
descending the hills, and crossing the bridge over the Tiber; when I
entered an avenue between terraces and ornamented gates of villas,
which leads to the Porto del Popolo, and beheld the square, the domes,
the obelisk, the long perspective of streets and palaces opening
beyond, all glowing with the vivid red of sunset? You can imagine how
I enjoyed my beloved tint, my favourite hour, surrounded by such
objects. You can fancy me ascending Monte Cavallo, leaning against the
pedestal which supports Bucephalus; then, spite of time and distance,
hurrying to St. Peter's in performance of my vow.
I met the Holy Father in all his pomp returning from vespers:
trumpets flourishing, and a legion of guards drawn out upon Ponte St.
Angelo. Casting a respectful glance upon the Moles Adriani, I moved on
till the full sweep of St. Peter's colonnade opened upon me, and fixed
me, as if spell-bound, under the obelisk, lost in wonder. The edifice
appears to have been raised within the year, such is its freshness and
preservation. I could hardly take my eyes from off the beautiful
symmetry of its front, contrasted with the magnificent though irregular
courts of the Vatican towering over the colonnade, till, the sun
sinking behind the dome, I ran up the steps and entered the grand
portal, which was on the very point of being closed.
I knew not where I was, or to what scene transported. A sacred
twilight concealing the extremities of the structure, I could not
distinguish any particular ornament, but enjoyed the effect of the
whole. No damp air or fetid exhalation offended me. The perfume of
incense was not yet entirely dissipated. No human being stirred. I
heard a door close with the sound of thunder, and thought I
distinguished some faint whisperings, but am ignorant whence they
came. Several hundred lamps twinkled round the high altar, quite lost
in the immensity of the pile. No other light disturbed my reveries but
the dying glow still visible through the western windows. Imagine how
I felt upon finding myself alone in this vast temple at so late an
hour, and think whether I had not revelations.
It was almost eight o'clock before I issued forth, and, pausing a few
minutes under the porticos, listened to the rush of the fountains: then
traversing half the town, I believe, in my way to the Villa Medici,
under which I am lodged, fell into a profound repose, which my zeal and
exercise may be allowed, I think, to have merited.
October 30th.—It was a clear morning; I mounted up to
the roof of the house, and sat under a set of open pavilions, surveying
the vast group of stately buildings below; then repaired immediately
after breakfast to St. Peter's, which even exceeded the height of my
expectations. I could hardly quit it. I wish his Holiness would allow
me to erect a little tabernacle under the dome. I should desire no
other prospect during the winter; no other sky than the vast arches
glowing with golden ornaments, so lofty as to lose all glitter or
gaudiness. But I cannot say I should be perfectly contented, unless I
could obtain another pavilion for you. Thus established, we would take
our evening walks on the field of marble; for is not the pavement vast
enough to excuse the extravagance of the appellation? Sometimes,
instead of climbing a mountain, we should ascend the cupola, and look
down on our little encampment below. At night I should wish for a
constellation of lamps dispersed about in clusters, and so contrived as
to diffuse a mild and equal light for us to read or draw by. Music
should not be wanting: one day to breathe in the subterraneous chapels,
another to mount high into the dome.
The doors should be closed, and not a mortal admitted. No priests,
no cardinals: God forbid! We should have all the space to ourselves,
and to such creatures, too, as resemble us.
The windows I should shade with transparent curtains of yellow silk,
to admit the glow of perpetual summer. Lanterns, as many as you
please, of all forms and sizes; they would remind us of China, and,
depending from the roof of the palace, bring before us that of the
Emperor Ki, which was twice as large as St. Peter's (if we may credit
the grand annals), and lighted alone by tapers, for his Imperial
Majesty, being tired of the sun, would absolutely have a new firmament
of his own creation, and an artificial day. Was it not a rare
fantastic idea? For my part, I should like of all things to immure
myself after his example, with those I love; forget the divisions of
time, have a moon at command, and a theatrical sun to rise and set at
pleasure.
I was so absorbed in my imaginary palace, and exhausted with
contriving plans for its embellishment, as to have no spirits left for
the Pantheon, which I visited late in the evening, and entered with a
reverence approaching to superstition. The whiteness of the dome
offending me, I slunk into one of the recesses, closed my eyes,
transported myself into antiquity; then opened them again, tried to
persuade myself the pagan gods were in their niches, and the saints out
of the question; was vexed at coming to my senses, and finding them all
there, St. Andrew with his cross, and St. Agnes with her lamb, etc.,
etc. Then I paced disconsolately into the portico, which shows the
name of Agrippa on its pediment. I leaned a minute against a
Corinthian column; I lamented that no pontiff arrived with victims and
aruspices, of whom I might inquire, what, in the name of birds and
garbage, put me so terribly out of humour! for you must know I was very
near being disappointed, and began to think Piranesi and Paolo Panini
had been a great deal too colossal in their view of this venerable
structure. I left the column, walked to the centre of the temple, and,
folding my arms, stood as fixed as a statue. Some architects have
celebrated the effect of light from the opening above, and pretended it
to be distributed around so as to give those who walk beneath the
appearance of mystic substances beaming with radiance. Mighty fine, if
that were the case! I appeared, to be sure, a luminous figure, and
never stood I more in need of something to distinguish me, being
forlorn and dismal in the supreme degree.
But though it is not so immense as I had expected, yet a certain
venerable air, an awful gloom, breathed inspiration, though of the
sorrowful kind.
I had expected a heap of Venetian letters, but could not discover
one. I had received no intelligence from England this many a tedious
day; and for aught I can tell to the contrary, you may have been dead
these three weeks. I think I shall wander soon in the Catacombs, which
I am half inclined to imagine communicate with the lower world; and
perhaps I may find some letter there from you, lying upon a broken
sarcophagus, dated from the realms of Night, and giving an account of
your descent into her bosom. Yet, I pray continually, notwithstanding
my curiosity to learn what passes in the dark regions beyond the tomb,
that you will condescend to remain a few years longer on our planet;
for what would become of me, should I lose sight of you for ever?
Stay, therefore, as long as you can, and let us have the delight of
dozing a little more of this poor existence away together, and steeping
ourselves in pleasant dreams.
October 31st.—I absolutely will have no antiquary to
go prating from fragment to fragment, and tell me, that were I to stay
five years at Rome, I should not see half it contained. The thought
alone, of so much to look at, is quite distracting, and makes me
resolve to view nothing at all in a scientific way; but straggle and
wander about, just as the spirit chooses. This evening, it led me to
the Coliseo, and excited a vehement desire in me to break down and
pulverize the whole circle of saints' nests and chapels, which disgrace
the arena. You recollect, I dare say, the vile effect of this holy
trumpery, and would join with all your heart in kicking it into the
Tiber. A few lazy abbots were at their devotions before them; such as
would have made a lion's mouth water; fatter, I dare say, than any
saint in the whole martyrology, and ten times more tantalizing. I
looked first, at the dens where wild beasts used to be kept, to divert
the magnanimous people of Rome with devastation and murder; then, at
the tame cattle before the altars. Heavens! thought I to myself, how
times are changed! Could ever Vespasian have imagined his amphitheatre
would have been thus inhabited? I passed on, making these reflections,
to a dark arcade, overgrown with ilex. In the openings which time and
violence have made, a distant grove of cypresses discover themselves;
springing from heaps of mouldering ruins, relieved by a clear
transparent sky, strewed with a few red clouds. This was the sort of
prospect I desired, and I sat down on a shattered frieze to enjoy it.
Many stories of ancient Rome thronged into my mind as I mused;
triumphal scenes, but tempered by sadness, and the awful thoughts of
their being all passed away. It would be in vain to recapitulate the
ideas which chased one another along. Think where I sat, and you may
easily conjecture the series. When the procession was fleeted by (for
I not only thought, but seemed to see warriors moving amongst the
cypresses, and consuls returning from Parthian expeditions, loaded with
strange spoils, and received with the acclamations of millions upon
entering the theatre), I arose, crossed the arena, paced several times
round and round, looked up to arcade rising above arcade, and admiring
the stately height and masses of the structure, considered it in
various points of view, and felt, as if I never should be satisfied
with gazing, hour after hour, and day after day. Next, directing my
steps to the arch of Constantine, I surveyed the groups of ruins which
surrounded me. The cool breeze of the evening played in the beds of
canes and osiers which flourished under the walls of the Coliseo: a
cloud of birds were upon the wing to regain their haunts in its
crevices; and, except the sound of their flight, all was silent; for
happily no carriages were rattling along. I observed the palace and
obelisk of St. John of Lateran, at a distance; but it was too late to
take a nearer survey; so, returning leisurely home, I traversed the
Campo Vaccino, and leaned a moment against one of the columns which
supported the temple of Jupiter Stator. Some women were fetching water
from the fountain hard by, whilst another group had kindled a fire
under the shrubs and twisted fig-trees, which cover the Palatine Hill.
Innumerable vaults and arches peep out of the vegetation. It was upon
these, in all probability, the splendid palace of the Cæsars was
raised. Confused fragments of marble, and walls of lofty terraces, are
the sole traces of its ancient magnificence. A wretched rabble were
roasting their chestnuts, on the very spot, perhaps, where Domitian
convened a senate, to harangue upon the delicacies of his
entertainment. The light of the flame cast upon the figures around it,
and the mixture of tottering wall with foliage impending above their
heads, formed a striking picture, which I stayed contemplating from my
pillar, till the fire went out, the assembly dispersed, and none
remained but a withered hag, raking the embers, and muttering to
herself. I thought also it was high time to retire, lest the
unwholesome mists, which were streaming from the opening before the
Coliseo, might make me repent my stay. Whether they had already taken
effect, or no, I will not absolutely determine; but something or other
had grievously disordered me. A few centuries ago I should have taxed
the old hag with my headache, and have attributed the uncommon
oppression I experienced to her baleful power. Hastening to my hotel,
I mounted into the open portico upon its summit, nearly upon a level
with the Villa Medici, and sat, several hours, with my arms folded in
one another, listening to the distant rumours of the town. It had been
a fine moment to have bestrode one of the winds which piped around me,
offering, no doubt, some compact from Lucifer.
November 1st.—Though you find I am not yet snatched
away from the earth, according to my last night's bodings, I was far
too restless and dispirited to deliver my recommendatory letters. St.
Carlos, a mighty day of gala at Naples, was an excellent excuse for
leaving Rome, and indulging my roving disposition. After spending my
morning at St. Peter's, we set off about four o'clock, and drove by the
Coliseo and a Capuchin convent, whose monks were all busied in
preparing the skeletons of their order, to figure by torchlight in the
evening. St. John's of Lateran astonished me. I could not help
walking several times round the obelisk, and admiring the noble open
space in which the palace is erected, and the extensive scene of towers
and aqueducts discovered from the platform in front.
We went out at the Porta Appia, and began to perceive the plains
which surround the city opening on every side. Long reaches of walls
and arches, but seldom interrupted, stretch across them. Sometimes,
indeed, a withered pine, lifting itself up to the mercy of every blast
that sweeps the champagne, breaks their uniformity. Between the
aqueducts to the left, nothing but wastes of fern, or tracts of
ploughed lands, dark and desolate, are visible, the corn not being yet
sprung up. On the right, several groups of ruined fanes and sepulchres
diversify the levels, with here and there a garden or woody inclosure.
Such objects are scattered over the landscape, that towards the horizon
bulges into gentle ascents, and, rising by degrees, swells at length
into a chain of mountains, which received the pale gleams of the sun,
setting in watery clouds.
By this uncertain light we discovered the white buildings of Albano,
sprinkled about the steeps. We had not many moments to contemplate
them, for it was night when we passed the Torre di mezza via, and began
breathing a close pestilential vapour. Half suffocated, and
recollecting a variety of terrifying tales about the malaria, we
advanced, not without fear, to Veletri, and hardly ventured to fall
asleep when arrived there.
November 2nd.—I arose at daybreak, and forgetting
fevers and mortalities, ran into a level meadow without the town,
whilst the horses were putting to the carriage. Why should I
calumniate the air? it seemed purer and more transparent than any I had
before inhaled. The mountains were covered with thin mists, and the
morning star sparkled above their summits. Birds were twittering
amongst some sheds and bushes, which border the sides of the road. A
chestnut hung over it, against which I leaned till the chaise came up.
Being perfectly alone, and not discovering any trace of the
neighbouring city, I fancied myself existing in the ancient days of
Hesperia, and hoped to meet Picus in his woods before the evening.
But, instead of those shrill clamours which used to echo through the
thickets when Pan joined with mortals in the chase, I heard the
rumbling of our carriage, and the curses of its postillions. Mounting
a horse, I flew before them, and seemed to catch inspiration from the
breezes. Now I turned my eyes to the ridge of precipices, in whose
grots and caverns Saturn and his people passed their life; then to the
distant ocean. Afar off rose the cliffs, so famous for Circe's
incantations, and the whole line of coast, which was once covered with
her forests.
Whilst I was advancing with full speed, the sunbeams began to shoot
athwart the mountains, the plains to light up by degrees, and their
shrubberies of myrtle to glisten with dewdrops. The sea brightened,
and the Circean rock soon glowed with purple. I never felt my spirits
so exhilarated, and they could not have flowed with more vivacity, even
had I tasted the cup which Helen gave Telemachus. You will think me
gone wild when I tell you I was, in a manner, drunk with the dews of
the morning, and so enraptured with the prospects which lay before me
as to address them in verse, and compose charms to dispel the
enchantments of Circe. All day were we approaching her rock; towards
evening Terracina appeared before us, in a bold romantic site; house
above house, and turret looking over turret, on the steeps of a
mountain, inclosed with mouldering walls, and crowned by the ruined
terraces of a delightful palace: one of those, perhaps, which the
luxurious Romans inhabited during the summer, when so free and lofty an
exposition (the sea below, with its gales and murmurs) must have been
exquisitely agreeable. Groves of orange and citron hang on the
declivity, rough with the Indian fig, whose bright red flowers,
illuminated by the sun, had a magic splendour. A palm-tree, growing on
the highest crag, adds not a little to its singular appearance. Being
the largest I had ever seen, and clustered with fruit, I climbed up the
rocks to take a close survey of it, and found a spring trickling near
its fount, bordered by fresh herbage. On this I stretched myself on
the very edge of the precipice, and looking down upon the beach, and
glassy plains of ocean, exclaimed with Martial:
“O nemua! O fentes! aolidumque madentis
Littus, et acquorcis splendidus Anxur aquis!”
Glancing my eyes athwart the sea, I fixed them on the Circean
promontory, which lies right opposite to Terracina, joined to the
continent by a very narrow strip of land, and appearing like an
island. The roar of the waves lashing the base of the precipices,
might still be thought the howl of savage monsters; but where are those
woods which shaded the dome of the goddess? Scarce a tree appears. A
few thickets, and but a few, are the sole remains of this once
impenetrable vegetation; yet even these I longed to visit, such was my
predilection for the spot.
Who knows but Circe might have led me to some other palace, in a more
secret and retired vale, where she dwells remote from modern mariners,
and the present inhabitants of her environs; universally changed to
swine for these many ages? Their metamorphoses being so thoroughly
established as to leave no further pretence for her operations, I can
imagine her given up to solitude, and the consciousness of her potent
influence. Notwithstanding the risks of the adventure, I wished to
have attempted it, and seen whether she would have allowed me, as night
came on, to warm myself by her cedar fire, and hear her captivating
song. Perhaps, had the goddess been propitious, I might have culled
some herbs of wondrous efficacy. You recollect, I dare say, how
renowned the cliff was for them, and remember that Circe's attendants,
deeply skilled, like their mistress, in pharmacy, were continually
gathering plants in the woods and wilds which enriched her abode. It
was thus the companions of Ulysses found them employed, when, entering
her palace, they unwarily drank the beverage she offered. Ovid has
told this story in a masterly manner, and formed a lively picture of
the magic dome, with the occupations of its inhabitants. We see them
judiciously arranging their plants, whilst Circe directs and points
out, with the nicest discernment, the simple and compound virtues of
every flower.
Descending the cliff, and pursuing our route to Mola along the shore,
by a grand road formed on the ruins of the Appian, we drove under an
enormous perpendicular rock, standing detached, like a watch-tower, and
cut into arsenals and magazines. Day closed just as we got beyond it,
and a new moon gleamed faintly on the waters. We saw fires afar off in
the bay, some twinkling on the coast, others upon the waves, and heard
the murmur of voices; for the night was still and solemn, like that of
Cajetas's funeral. I looked anxiously on a sea, where the heroes of
the Odyssey and Æneid had sailed in search of fate and empire, then
closed my eyes, and dreamed of those illustrious wanderers.
Nine struck when we arrived at Mola di Cajeta. The boats were just
coming in (whose lights we had seen out upon the main), and brought
such fish as Neptune, I dare say, would have grudged Æneas and Ulysses.
November 3rd.—The morning was soft, but hazy. I
walked in a grove of oranges, white with blossoms, and at. the same
time glowing with fruit, some of which I obtained leave to gather. The
spot sloped pleasantly towards the sea, and here I amused myself with
my agreeable occupation till the horses were ready, then set off on the
Appian, between hedges of myrtle and aloes, catching fresh gales from
the sea as I flew along, and breathing the perfume of an aromatic
vegetation, which covers the fields on the shore. We observed variety
of towns, with battlemented walls and ancient turrets, crowning the
pinnacles of rocky steeps, surrounded by wilds, and rude uncultivated
mountains. The Liris, now Garigliano, winds its peaceful course
through wide extensive meadows, scattered over with the remains of
aqueducts, and waters the base of the rocks I have just mentioned.
Such a prospect could not fail of bringing Virgil's panegyric of Italy
full in my mind:
“Tot congesta manu praeruptis oppida saxis
Fluminaque antiquos suhterlabentia muros.”
As soon as we arrived in sight of Capua, the sky darkened, clouds
covered the horizon, and presently poured down such deluges of rain as
floated the whole country. The gloom was general; Vesuvius disappeared
just after we had the pleasure of discovering it; lightning began to
flash with dreadful rapidity, and people to run frightened to their
houses. At four o'clock darkness universally prevailed, except when a
livid glare of lightning presented momentary glimpses of the bay and
mountains. We lighted torches, and forded several torrents almost at
the hazard of our lives. The fields round Naples were filled with
herds, lowing most piteously, and yet not half so much scared as their
masters, who ran about cursing and swearing like Indians during the
eclipse of the moon. I knew Vesuvius had often put their courage to
proof, but little thought of an inundation occasioning such commotions.
For three hours the storm increased in violence, and instead of
entering Naples on a calm evening, and viewing its delightful shores by
moonlight—instead of finding the squares and terraces thronged with
people and animated by music, we advanced with fear and terror through
dark streets totally deserted, every creature being shut up in their
houses, and we heard nothing but driving rain, rushing torrents, and
the fall of fragments beaten down by their violence. Our inn, like
every other habitation, was in great disorder, and we waited a long
while before we could settle in our apartments with any comfort. All
night the waves roared round the rocky foundations of a fortress
beneath my windows, and the lightning played clear in my eyes. I could
not sleep, and was full as disturbed as the elements.
November 4th.—Peace was restored to nature in the
morning, but every mouth was full of the dreadful accidents which had
happened in the night. The sky was cloudless when I awoke, and such
was the transparence of the atmosphere that I could clearly discern the
rocks, and even some white buildings on the island of Caprea, though at
the distance of several miles. A large window fronts my bed, and its
casements being thrown open, gives me a vast prospect of ocean,
uninterrupted except by the peaks of Caprea and the Cape of Sorento. I
lay half an hour gazing on the smooth level waters, and listening to
the confused voices of the fishermen, passing and repassing in light
skiffs, which came and disappeared in an instant.
Running to the balcony the moment my eyes were fairly open (for till
then I saw objects, I know not how, as one does in dreams), I leaned
over its rails, and viewed Vesuvius rising distinct into the blue
ether, with all that world of gardens and casinos which are scattered
about its base; then looked down into the street, deep below, thronged
with people in holiday garments, and carriages, and soldiers in full
parade. The woody, variegated shore of Posilipo next drew my
attention. It was on those very rocks, under those tall pines,
Sannazaro was wont to sit by moonlight, or at peep of dawn, holding
converse with the Nereids. 'Tis there he still sleeps; and I wished to
have gone immediately and strewed coral over his tomb, but I was
obliged to check my impatience, and hurry to the palace in form and
gala.
A courtly mob had got thither upon the same errand, daubed over with
lace and most notably be-periwigged. Nothing but—bows and
salutations were going forward on the staircase, one of the largest I
ever beheld, and which a multitude of prelates and friars were
ascending in all the pomp of awkwardness. I jostled along to the
presence chamber, where his Majesty was dining alone in a circular
inclosure of fine clothes and smirking faces. The moment he had
finished, twenty long necks were poked forth, and it was a glorious
struggle amongst some of the most decorated who first should kiss his
hand. Doing so was the great business of the day, and everybody
pressed forward to the best of their abilities. His Majesty seemed to
eye nothing but the end of his nose, which is doubtless a capital
object.
Though people have imagined him a weak monarch, I beg leave to differ
in opinion, since he has the boldness to prolong his childhood and be
happy, in spite of years and conviction. Give him a boar to stab, and
a pigeon to shoot at, a battledore or an angling rod, and he is better
contented than Solomon in all his glory, and will never discover, like
that sapient sovereign, that all is vanity and vexation of spirit.
His courtiers in general have rather a barbaric appearance, and
differ little in the character of their physiognomies from the most
savage nations. I should have taken them for Calmucks or Samoieds, had
it not been for their dresses and European finery.
You may suppose I was not sorry, after my presentation was over, to
return to Sir W.'s and hear Lady H. play, whose music breathes the most
pastoral Sicilian ideas, and transports me to green meads on the
sea-coast, where I wander with Theocritus.
The evening was passing swiftly away in this delightful excursion of
fancy, and I had almost forgotten there was a grand illumination at the
theatre of St. Carlo. After traversing a number of dark streets, we
suddenly entered this enormous edifice, whose six rows of boxes blazed
with tapers. I never beheld such lofty walls of light, nor so pompous
a decoration as covered the stage. Marchesi was singing in the midst
of all these splendours some of the poorest music imaginable, with the
clearest and most triumphant voice, perhaps, in the universe.
It was some time before I could look to any purpose around me, or
discover what animals inhabited this glittering world: such was its
size and glare. At last I perceived vast numbers of ugly beings, in
gold and silver raiment, peeping out of their boxes. The court being
present, a tolerable silence was maintained, but the moment his Majesty
withdrew (which great event took place at the beginning of the second
act) every tongue broke loose, and nothing but buzz and hubbub filled
up the rest of the entertainment.
The last ballet, formed upon the old story of “Le Festin de Pierre,”
had wonderful effect, and terminated in the most striking perspective
of the infernal region. Picq danced incomparably, and Signora Rossi
led the Fandango, with a grace and activity that pleased me beyond
idea. Music was never more rapturous than that which accompanies this
dance. It quite enchanted me, and I longed to have sprung upon the
stage. The cadence is so strongly marked by the castanets, that it is
almost impossible to be out of time; and the rapidity of steps and
varied movements scarcely allows a moment to think of being tired. I
should imagine the eternal dance, with which certain tribes of American
savages think they are to be rewarded in a future existence, might be
formed somewhat on this model. Indeed the Fandango arrived in Spain
with the conquerors of the other hemisphere, and is far too lively and
extatic to be of European original.
November 6th—Till to-day we have had nothing but
rains; the sea covered with mists, and Caprea invisible. Would you
believe it? I have not yet been able to mount to St. Elmo and the Capo
di Monte, in order to take a general view of the town.
At length a bright gleam of sunshine roused me from my slumbers, and
summoned me to the broad terrace of Chiaja, directly above the waters
and commanding the whole coast of Posilipo. Insensibly I drew towards
it, and (you know the pace I run when out upon discoveries) soon
reached the entrance of the grotto, which lay in dark shades, whilst
the crags that lower over it were brightly illumined. Shrubs and vines
grow luxuriantly in the crevices of the rock; and their fresh yellow
colours, variegated with ivy, have a beautiful effect. To the right a
grove of pines sprung from the highest pinnacles: on the left, bay and
chestnut conceal the tomb of Virgil, placed on the summit of a cliff
which impends over the opening of the grotto, and is fringed with a
florid vegetation. Beneath are several wide apertures hollowed in the
solid stone, which lead to caverns sixty or seventy feet in depth,
where a number of peasants, who were employed in quarrying, made such a
noise with their tools and their voices as almost inclined me to wish
the Cimmerians would start from their subterraneous habitations, and
sacrifice these profane to the Manes.
Walking out of the sunshine, I seated myself on a loose stone
immediately beneath the first gloomy arch of the grotto, and looking
down the vast and solemn perspective, terminated by a speck of grey
uncertain light, venerated a work which some old chroniclers have
imagined as ancient as the Trojan war. 'Twas here the mysterious race
I have just mentioned performed their infernal rites, and it was this
excavation perhaps which led to their abode.
The Neapolitans attribute a more modern, though full as problematical
an origin to their famous cavern, and most piously believe it to have
been formed by the enchantments of Virgil, who, as Mr. Addison very
justly observes, is better known at Naples in his magical character,
than as the author of the Æneid. This strange infatuation most
probably arose from the vicinity of the tomb, in which his ashes are
supposed to have been deposited; and which, according to popular
tradition, was guarded by those very spirits who assisted in
constructing the cave. But whatever may have given rise to these
ideas, certain it is they were not confined to the lower ranks alone.
King Robert, {240}
a wise though far from poetical monarch, conducted his friend Petrarch
with great solemnity to the spot; and, pointing to the entrance of the
grotto, very gravely asked him, whether he did not adopt the general
belief, and conclude this stupendous passage derived its origin from
Virgil's powerful incantations? The answer, I think, may easily be
conjectured.
When I had sat for some time, contemplating this dusky avenue, and
trying to persuade myself that it was hewn by the Cimmerians, I
retreated without proceeding any farther, and followed a narrow path
which led me, after some windings and turnings, along the brink of the
precipice, across a vineyard, to that retired nook of the rocks which
shelters Virgil's tomb, most venerably mossed over, and more than half
concealed by bushes and vegetation. Drops of dew were distilling from
the niches of the little chamber, which once contained his urn, and
heaps of withered leaves had gathered on the pavement. Amongst these I
crept to eat some grapes and biscuits, having duly scattered a few
crumbs as a sort of offering to the invisible guardians of the place.
I believe they were sensible of my piety, and, as a reward, kept
vagabonds and clowns away.
The one who conducted me remained aloof at awful distance, whilst I
sat commercing with the manes of my beloved poet, or straggling about
the shrubbery which hangs directly above the mouth of the grot. I
wonder I did not visit the eternal shades sooner that I expected, for
no squirrel ever skipped from bough to bough more venturously. One
instant I climbed up the branches of a chestnut, and sat almost on its
extremity, my feet impending over the chasm below; another I boldly
advanced to the edge of the rock, and saw crowds of people and
carriages, diminished by distance, issuing from the bosom of the
mountain, and disappearing almost as soon as discovered in the windings
of its road. Having clambered high above the cavern, I hazarded my
neck on the top of one of the pines, and looked contemptuously down on
the race of pigmies that were so busily moving to and fro. The sun was
fiercer than I could have wished, but the sea-breezes fanned me in my
aërial situation, which commanded the grand sweep of the bay, varied by
convents, palaces, and gardens, mixed with huge masses of rock and
crowned by the stately buildings of the Carthusians and fortress of St.
Elmo. Add a glittering blue sea to this perspective, with Caprea
rising from its bosom, and Vesuvius breathing forth a white column of
smoke into the ether, and you will then have a scene upon which I gazed
with delight, for more than an hour, almost forgetting that I was
perched upon the head of a pine, with nothing but a frail branch to
uphold me. However, I descended alive, as Virgil's genii, I am
resolved to believe, were my protectors.
November 8th.—This morning I awoke in the glow of
sunshine; the air blew fresh and fragrant; never did I feel more
elastic and enlivened. A brisker flow of spirits than I had for many a
day experienced, animated me with a desire of rambling about the shore
of Baii, and creeping into caverns and subterraneous chambers. Off I
set along Chiaja, and up strange paths which impend over the grotto of
Posilipo, amongst the thickets mentioned a letter or two ago; for in my
present lively humour, I disdained ordinary roads, and would take paths
and ways of my own. A society of kids did not understand what I meant
by intruding upon their precipices; and scrambling away, scattered sand
and fragments upon the good people that were trudging along the
pavement below.
I went on from pine to pine, and thicket to thicket, upon the brink
of rapid declivities. My conductor, a shrewd savage, whom Sir William
had recommended to me, cheered our route with stories that had passed
in the neighbourhood, and traditions about the grot over which we were
travelling. I wish you had been of the party, and sat down by us on
little smooth spots of sward, where I reclined, scarcely knowing which
way caprice was leading me. My mind was full of the tales of the
place, and glowed with a vehement desire of exploring the world beyond
the grot. I longed to ascend the promontory of Misenus, and follow the
same dusky route down which the Sibyl conducted Æneas.
With these dispositions I proceeded; and soon the cliffs and copses
opened to views of the Baian bay, with the little isles of Niscita and
Lazaretto lifting themselves out of the waters. Procita and Ischia
appeared at a distance, invested with that purple bloom so
inexpressibly beautiful, and peculiar to this fortunate climate. I
hailed the prospect and blessed the transparent air that gave me life
and vigour to run down the rocks, and hie as fast as my savage across
the plain to Puzzoli. There we took bark and rowed out into the blue
ocean, by the remains of a sturdy mole: many such, I imagine, adorned
the bay in Roman ages crowned by vast lengths of slender pillars;
pavilions at their extremities, and taper cypresses spiring above their
balustrades: this character of villa occurs very frequently in the
paintings of Herculaneum.
We had soon crossed the bay, and landing on a bushy coast, near some
fragments of a temple which they say was raised to Hercules, advanced
into the country by narrow tracks covered with moss and strewed with
shining pebbles; to the right and left, broad masses of luxuriant
foliage, chestnut, bay, and ilex, that shelter the ruins of
columbariums and sepulchral chambers, where the dead sleep snug amongst
rampant herbage. The region was still, save when a cock crew from the
hamlets, which, as well as the tombs, are almost concealed by
thickets. No parties of smart Englishmen and connoisseurs were about.
I had all the land to myself, and mounted its steeps and penetrated
into its recesses, with the importance of a discoverer. What a variety
of narrow paths, between banks and shades, did I wildly follow! my
savage laughing loud at my odd gestures and useless activity. He
wondered I did not scrape the ground for medals, and pocket little bits
of plaster, like other plausible young travellers that had gone before
me.
After ascending some time, I followed him into the Piscina Mirabilis,
the wondrous reservoir which Nero constructed to supply his fleet, when
anchored in the neighbouring bay. 'Tis a grand labyrinth of solid
vaults and pillars, as you well know, but you cannot conceive the
partial gleams of sunshine which played on the arches, nor the variety
of roots and ivies trailing from the cove. A noise of trickling waters
prevailed, that had almost lulled me to sleep as I rested myself on the
celandine which carpets the floor; but curiosity urging me forward, I
gained the upper air; walked amongst woods a few minutes, and then into
grots and dismal excavations (prisons they call them), which began to
weary me.
After having gone up and down in this manner for some time, we at
last reached an eminence that looked over the Mare Morto, and Elysian
fields trembling with poplars. The Dead Lake, a faithful emblem of
eternal tranquillity, looked deep and solemn. A few peasants were
passing along its margin, their shadows reflected on the water: all was
serene and peaceful. Turning from the lake I espied a rock at about a
league distant, whose summit was clad with verdure, and finding this to
be the promontory of Misenus, I immediately set my face to that
quarter.
We passed several dirty villages, inhabited by an ill-favoured
generation, infamous for depredations and murders. Their gardens,
however, discover some marks of industry; the fields are separated by
neat hedges of cane, and corn seemed to flourish in the inclosures.
I walked on with slowness and deliberation, musing at every step, and
stopping ever and anon to rest myself by springs and tufted bay-trees;
when insensibly we began to leave the cultivated lands behind us, and
to lose ourselves in shady wilds, which, to all appearance, no mortal
had ever trodden. Here were no paths, no enclosures; a primeval
rudeness characterized the whole scene,—
“Juvat arva videre,
Non rastris, hominum non ulli obnoxia curæ.”
The idea of going almost out of the world, soothed the tone of mind
into which a variety of affecting recollections had thrown me. I
formed conjectures about the promontory to which we were tending; and
when I cast my eyes around the savage landscape, transported myself
four thousand years into antiquity, and half persuaded myself I was one
of Æneas's companions. After forcing our way about a mile through
glades of shrubs and briars, we entered a verdant opening at the base
of the cliff which takes its name from Misenus. The poets of the
Augustan age would have celebrated such a meadow with the warmest
raptures; they would have discovered a nymph in every flower, and
detected a dryad under every tree. Doubtless imagination never formed
a lovelier prospect. Here were clear streams and grassy hillocks,
leafy shrubs and cypresses spiring out of their bosom,—
“Et circum irriguo surgebant lilia prato
Candida purpureis mista papaveribus.”
But as it is not the lot of human animals to be contented, instead of
reposing in the vale, I scaled the rock, and was three parts dissolved
in attaining its summit,—a flat spot covered with herbage, where I
lay contemplating the ocean, and fanned by its breezes. The sun darted
upon my head; I wished to avoid its immediate influence: no tree was
near. Deep below lay the pleasant valley: 'twas a long way to
descend. Looking round and round, I spied something like a hut, under
a crag on the edge of a dark fissure. Might I avail myself of its
covert? My conductor answered in the affirmative, and added that it
was inhabited by a good old woman, who never refused a cup of milk, or
slice of bread, to refresh a weary traveller.
Thirst and fatigue urged me speedily down an intervening slope of
stunted myrtle. Though oppressed with heat, I could not help deviating
a few steps from the direct path to notice the uncouth rocks which rose
frowning on every quarter. Above the hut, their appearance was truly
formidable; dark ivy crept among the crevices, and dwarf aloes with
sharp spines, such as Lucifer himself might be supposed to have sown.
Indeed, I knew not whether I was not approaching some gate that leads
to his abode, as I drew near a gulph (the fissure lately mentioned) and
heard the hollow gusts which were imprisoned below. The savage, my
guide, shuddered as he passed by to apprise the old woman of my
coming. I felt strangely, and stared around me, and but half liked my
situation. To say truth, I wished myself away, and heartily regretted
the green vale.
In the midst of my doubts, forth tottered the old woman. “You are
welcome,” said she, in a feeble voice, but a better dialect than I had
heard in the neighbourhood. Her look was more humane, and she seemed
of a superior race to the inhabitants of the surrounding valleys. My
savage treated her with peculiar deference. She had just given him
some bread, with which he retired to a respectful distance, bowing to
the earth. I caught the mode, and was very obsequious, thinking myself
on the point of experiencing a witch's influence, and gaining, perhaps,
some insight into the volume of futurity. She smiled at my agitation,
and kept beckoning me into the cottage.
“Now,” thought I to myself, “I am upon the verge of an adventure. O
Quixote! O Sylvio di Rosalva! how would ye have strutted in such a
situation! What fair Infantas would ye not have expected to behold,
condemned to spinning wheels, and solitude?” I, alas! saw nothing but
clay walls, a straw bed, some glazed earthen bowls, and a wooden
crucifix. My shoes were loaded with sand: this my hostess perceived,
and immediately kindling a fire in an inner part of the hovel, brought
out some warm water to refresh my feet, and set some milk and chestnuts
before me. This patriarchal politeness was by no means indifferent
after my tiresome ramble. I sat down opposite to the door which
fronted the unfathomable gulph; beyond appeared the sea, of a deep
cerulean, foaming with waves. The sky also was darkening apace with
storms. Sadness came over me like a cloud, and I looked up to the old
woman for consolation.
“And you too are sorrowful, young stranger,” said she, “that come
from the gay world! How must I feel, who pass year after year in these
lonely mountains?” I answered that the weather affected me, and my
spirits were exhausted by the walk.
All the while I spoke she looked at me with such a melancholy
earnestness that I asked the cause, and began again to imagine myself
in some fatal habitation,
“Where more is meant than meets the ear.”
Said she, “Your features are wonderfully like those of an unfortunate
young person, who, in this retirement . . . “ The tears began to fall
as she pronounced these words; she seemed older than before, and bent
to the ground with sorrow. My curiosity was fired. “Tell me,”
continued I, “what you mean? who was this youth for whom you are so
interested? and why did he seclude himself in this wild region? Your
kindness might no doubt alleviate, in some measure, the horrors of the
place; but may God defend me from passing the night near such a gulph!
I would not trust myself in a despairing moment.”
“It is,” said she, “a place of horrors. I tremble to relate what has
happened on this very spot; but your manner interests me, and though I
am little given to narrations, for once I will unlock my lips
concerning the secrets of yonder fatal chasm.
“I was born in a distant part of Italy, and have known better days.
In my youth fortune smiled upon my family, but in a few years they
withered away; no matter by what accident. I am not going, however, to
talk of myself. Have patience a few moments! A series of unfortunate
events reduced me to indigence, and drove me to this desert, where,
from rearing goats and making their milk into cheese, by a different
method than is common in the Neapolitan State, I have, for about thirty
years, prolonged a sorrowful existence. My silent grief and constant
retirement had made me appear to some a saint, and to others a
sorceress. The slight knowledge I have of plants has been exaggerated,
and, some years back, the hours I gave up to prayer, and the
recollection of former friends, lost to me for ever! were cruelly
intruded upon by the idle and the ignorant. But soon I sank into
obscurity; my little recipes were disregarded, and you are the first
stranger who, for these twelve months past, has visited my abode. Ah,
would to God its solitude had ever remained inviolate!
“It is now three-and-twenty years,” and she looked upon some
characters cut on the planks of the cottage, “since I was sitting by
moonlight, under that cliff you view to the right, my eyes fixed on the
ocean, my mind lost in the memory of my misfortunes, when I heard a
step, and starting up, a figure stood before me. It was a young man,
in a rich habit, with streaming hair, and looks that bespoke the utmost
terror. I knew not what to think of this sudden apparition. 'Mother,'
said he with faltering accents, 'let me rest under your roof; and
deliver me not up to those who thirst after my blood. Take this gold;
take all, all!'
“Surprise held me speechless; the purse fell to the ground; the youth
stared wildly on every side: I heard many voices beyond the rocks; the
wind bore them distinctly, but presently they died away. I took
courage, and assured the youth my cot should shelter him. 'Oh! thank
you, thank you!' answered he, and pressed my hand. He shared my scanty
provision.
“Overcome with toil (for I had worked hard in the day), sleep closed
my eyes for a short interval. When I awoke the moon was set, but I
heard my unhappy guest sobbing in darkness. I disturbed him not.
Morning dawned, and he was fallen into a slumber. The tears bubbled
out of his closed eyelids, and coursed one another down his wan
cheeks. I had been too wretched myself not to respect the sorrows of
another: neglecting therefore my accustomed occupations, I drove away
the flies that buzzed around his temples. His breast heaved high with
sighs, and he cried loudly in his sleep for mercy.
“The beams of the sun dispelling his dream, he started up like one
that had heard the voice of an avenging angel, and hid his face with
his hands. I poured some milk down his parched throat. 'Oh, mother!'
he exclaimed, 'I am a wretch unworthy of compassion; the cause of
innumerable sufferings; a murderer! a parricide!' My blood curdled to
hear a stripling utter such dreadful words, and behold such agonising
sighs swell in so young a bosom; for I marked the sting of conscience
urging him to disclose what I am going to relate.
“It seems he was of high extraction, nursed in the pomps and luxuries
of Naples, the pride and darling of his parents, adorned with a
thousand lively talents, which the keenest sensibility conspired to
improve. Unable to fix any bounds to whatever became the object of his
desires, he passed his first years in roving from one extravagance to
another, but as yet there was no crime in his caprices.
“At length it pleased Heaven to visit his family, and make their idol
the slave of an unworthy passion. He had a friend, who from his birth
had been devoted to his interest, and placed all his confidence in
him. This friend loved to distraction a young creature, the most
graceful of her sex (as I can witness), and she returned his
affection. In the exultation of his heart, he showed her to the wretch
whose tale I am about to tell. He sickened at her sight. She too
caught fire at his glances. They languished—they consumed away—
they conversed, and his persuasive language finished what his guilty
glances had begun.
“Their flame was soon discovered, for he disdained to conceal a
thought, however dishonourable. The parents warned the youth in the
tenderest manner; but advice and prudent counsels were to him so
loathsome, that unable to contain his rage, and infatuated with love,
he menaced the life of his friend as the obstacle of his enjoyment.
Coolness and moderation were opposed to violence and frenzy, and he
found himself treated with a contemptuous gentleness. Stricken to the
heart, he wandered about for some time like one entranced. Meanwhile
the nuptials were preparing; and the lovely girl he had perverted found
ways to let him know she was about to be torn from his embraces.
“He raved, and rousing his dire spirit, applied to a malignant dæmon
who sold the most inveterate poisons. These he presented, like a cup
of pure iced water, to his friend, and to his own affectionate father.
They drank the draught, and soon began to pine. He marked the progress
of their dissolution with a horrid firmness. He let the moment pass
beyond which all antidotes were vain. His friend expired; and the
young criminal, though he beheld the dews of death hang on his parent's
forehead, yet stretched not forth his hand. In a short space the
miserable father breathed his last, whilst his son was sitting aloof in
the same chamber.
“The sight overcame him. He felt, for the first time, the pangs of
remorse. His agitation passed not unnoticed. He was watched:
suspicions beginning to unfold, he took alarm, and one evening escaped;
but not without previously informing the partner of his crimes which
way he intended to flee. Several pursued; but the inscrutable will of
Providence blinded their search, and I was doomed to behold the effects
of celestial vengeance.
“Such are the chief circumstances of the tale I gathered from the
youth. I swooned whilst he related it, and could take no sustenance.
One whole day afterwards did I pray the Lord, that I might die rather
than be near an incarnate demon. With what indignation did I now
survey that slender form and those flowing tresses, which had
interested me before so much in his behalf!
“No sooner did he perceive the change in my countenance, than
sullenly retiring to yonder rock, he sat careless of the sun and
scorching winds; for it was now the summer solstice. Equally was he
heedless of the unwholesome dews. When midnight came my horrors were
augmented; and I meditated several times to abandon my hovel, and fly
to the next village; but a power more than human chained me to the spot
and fortified my mind.
“I slept, and it was late next morning when some one called at the
wicket of the little fold, where my goats are penned. I arose, and saw
a peasant of my acquaintance leading a female strangely muffled up, and
casting her eyes on the ground. My heart misgave me. I thought this
was the very maid who had been the cause of such unheard-of
wickedness. Nor were my conjectures ill-founded. Regardless of the
clown who stood by in stupid astonishment, she fell to the earth and
bathed my hand with tears. Her trembling lips with difficulty inquired
after the youth; and, as she spoke, a glow of conscious guilt lightened
up her pale countenance.
“The full recollection of her lover's crimes shot through my memory.
I was incensed, and would have spurned her away; but she clung to my
garments and seemed to implore my pity with a look so full of misery,
that, relenting, I led her in silence to the extremity of the cliff
where the youth was seated, his feet dangling above the sea. His eye
was rolling wildly around, but it soon fixed upon the object for whose
sake he had doomed himself to perdition.
“I am not inclined to describe their ecstasies, or the eagerness with
which they sought each other's embraces. I turned indignantly my head;
and, driving my goats to a recess amongst the rocks, sat revolving in
my mind these strange events. I neglected procuring any provision for
my unwelcome guests; and about midnight returned homewards by the light
of the moon, which shone serenely in the heavens. Almost the first
object her beams discovered was the guilty maid sustaining the head of
her lover, who had fainted through weakness and want of nourishment. I
fetched some dry bread, and, dipping it in milk, laid it before them.
Having performed this duty I set open the door of my hut, and retiring
to a neighbouring cavity, there stretched myself on a heap of leaves,
and offered my prayers to Heaven.
“A thousand fears, till this moment unknown, thronged into my fancy.
I mistook the shadow of leaves, that chequered the entrance to the
grot, for ugly reptiles, and repeatedly shook my garments. The flow of
the distant surges was deepened by my apprehensions into distant
groans: in a word, I could not rest; but issuing from the cavern as
hastily as my trembling knees would allow, paced along the edge of the
precipice. An unaccountable impulse hurried my steps. Dark clouds
were driving across the sky, and the setting moon was flushed with the
deepest crimson. A wan gleam coloured the sea. Such was my terror and
shivering, that, unable to advance to my hut or retreat to the cavern,
I was about to shield myself from the night in a sandy crevice, when a
loud shriek pierced my ear. My fears had confused me; I was in fact
hard by my hovel, and scarcely three paces from the brink of the
cavern: it was from thence the cries proceeded.
“Advancing in a cold shudder to its edge, part of which was newly
crumbled in, I discovered the form of the young man suspended by one
foot to a branch of juniper that grew ten feet down: thus dreadfully
did he hang over the gulph from the branch bent with his weight. His
features were distorted, his eye-balls glared with agony, and his
screams became so shrill and terrible, that I lost all power of
assistance. Fixed, I stood with my eyes riveted upon the criminal, who
incessantly cried out, 'O God! O Father! save me, if there be yet
mercy! save me, or I sink into the abyss!'
“I am convinced he saw me not; for not once did he implore my help.
My heart was dead within me. I called out upon the Lord. His voice
grew faint, and as I gazed intent upon him, he fell into utter
darkness. I sank to the earth in a trance, during which a sound like
the rush of pennons assaulted my ear: methought the evil spirit was
bearing off his soul; I lifted up my eyes, but nothing stirred; the
stillness that prevailed was awful.
“The moon looked stained with streaks of blood; her orb hanging low
over the waves afforded a sickly light, by which I perceived some one
coming down that white cliff you see before you; and soon I heard the
voice of the young woman calling aloud on her guilty lover. She
stopped. She repeated again and again her exclamation; but there was
no reply. Alarmed and frantic she hurried along the path, and now I
saw her on the promontory, and now by yonder pine, devouring with her
glances every crevice in the rock. At length perceiving me, she flew
to where I stood, by the fatal precipice, and having noticed the
fragments fresh crumbled in, pored importunately on my countenance. I
continued pointing to the chasm; she trembled not; her tears could not
flow; but she divined the meaning. 'He is lost!' said she; 'the earth
has swallowed him! but, as I have shared with him the highest joy, so
will I partake his torments. I will follow; dare not to hinder me.' I
shrank back.
“Like the phantoms I have seen in dreams, she glanced beside me; and,
clasping her hands above her head, lifted a steadfast look on the
hemisphere, and viewed the moon with an anxiousness that told me she
was bidding it farewell for ever. Observing a silken handkerchief on
the ground, with which she had but an hour ago bound her lover's
temples, she snatched it up, and imprinting it with burning kisses,
thrust it into her bosom. Once more, expanding her arms in the last
act of despair and miserable passion, she threw herself, with a furious
leap, into the gulph.
“To its margin I crawled on my knees, and, shuddering, looked down
into the gloom. There I remained in the most dreadful darkness; for
now the moon was sunk, the sky obscured with storms, and a tempestuous
blast ranging the ocean. Showers poured thick upon me, and the
lightning, in clear and frequent flashes, gave me terrifying glimpses
of yonder accursed chasm.
“Stranger, dost thou believe in the great Being? in our Redeemer? in
the tenets of our faith?” I answered with reverence, but said I was no
Catholic. “Then,” continued the aged woman, “I will not declare before
a heretic what were the sacred visions of that night of vengeance!”
She paused; I was silent.
After a short interval, with deep and frequent sighs, she resumed her
narrative. “Daylight began to dawn as if with difficulty, and it was
late before its radiance had tinged the watery and tempestuous clouds.
I was still kneeling by the gulph in prayer when the cliffs began to
brighten, and the beams of the morning sun to strike against me. Then
did I rejoice. Then no longer did I think myself of all human beings
the most abject and miserable. How different did I feel myself from
those, fresh plunged into the abodes of torment, and driven for ever
from the morning!
“Three days elapsed in total solitude: on the fourth, some grave and
ancient persons arrived from Naples, who questioned me, repeatedly,
about the wretched lovers, and to whom I related their fate with every
dreadful particular. Soon after I learned that all discourse
concerning them was expressly stopped, and that no prayers were offered
up for their souls.”
With these words, as well as I recollect, the old woman ended her
singular narration. My blood thrilled as I walked by the gulph to call
my guide, who stood aloof under the cliffs. He seemed to think, from
the paleness of my countenance, that I had heard some gloomy
prediction, and shook his head when I turned round to bid my old
hostess adieu! It was a melancholy evening, and I could not refrain
from tears, as, winding through the defiles of the rocks, the sad
scenes which had passed amongst them recurred to my memory.
Traversing a wild thicket, we soon regained the shore, where I
rambled a few minutes whilst the peasant went for the boatmen. The
last streaks of light were quivering on the waters when I stepped into
the bark, and wrapping myself up in an awning, slept till we reached
Puzzoli, some of whose inhabitants came forth with torches to light us
home.
I was vexed to be roused from my visions, and had much rather have
sunk in some deep cave of the Cimmerians than returned to Naples.
NAPLES, November 9th.
We made our excursion to Pompeii, passing through Portici, and over
the last lava of Mount Vesuvius. I experienced a strange mixture of
sensations, on surveying at once the mischiefs of the late eruption, in
the ruin of villages, farms, and vineyards; and all around them the
most luxuriant and delightful scenery of nature. It was impossible to
resist the impressions of melancholy from viewing the former, or not to
admit that gaiety of spirits which was inspired by the sight of the
latter. I say nothing of the Museum at Portici, which we saw in our
way, on account of the ample description of its contents already given
to the public, and because it should be described no otherwise than by
an exact catalogue, or by an exhibition of engravings. An hour and
half brought us from this celebrated repository to Pompeii. Nothing
can be conceived more delightful than the climate and situation of this
city. It stands upon a gently-rising hill, which commands the bay of
Naples, with the islands of Caprea and Ischia, the rich coasts of
Sorento, the tower of Castel a Mare; and on the other side, Mount
Vesuvius, with the lovely country intervening. It is judged to be
about an Italian mile long, and three and a half in circuit. We
entered the city at the little gate which lies towards Stabiæ. The
first object upon entering is a colonnade round a square court, which
seems to have formed a place of arms. Behind the colonnade is a series
of little rooms, destined for the soldiers' barracks. The columns are
of stone, plaistered with stucco and coloured. On several of them we
found names scratched in Greek and Latin; probably those of the
soldiers who had been quartered there. Helmets and armour for various
parts of the body were discovered amongst the skeletons of some
soldiers, whose hard fate had compelled them to wait on duty, at the
perilous moment of the city's approaching destruction. Dolphins and
tridents, sculptured in relief on most of these relics of armour, seem
to show that they had been fabricated for naval service. Some of the
sculptures on the arms, probably belonging to officers, exhibit a
greater variety of ornaments. The taking of Troy, wrought on one of
the helmets, is beautifully executed; and much may be said in
commendation of the work of several others.
We were next led to the remains of a temple and altar near these
barracks. From thence to some rooms floored (as indeed were almost all
that have been cleared from the rubbish) with tesselated mosaic
pavements of various patterns, and most of them of very excellent
execution. Many of these have been taken up, and now form the floors
of the rooms in the Museum at Portici, whose best ornaments of every
kind are furnished from the discoveries at Pompeii. From the rooms
just mentioned we descended into a subterraneous chamber, communicating
with a bathing apartment. It appears to have served as a kind of
office to the latter. It was probably here that the clothes used in
bathing were washed. A fireplace, a capacious cauldron of bronze, and
earthen vessels, proper for that purpose, found here, have given rise
to the conjecture. Contiguous to this room is a small circular one
with a fireplace, which was the stove to the bath. I should not forget
to tell you that the skeleton of the poor laundress (for so the
antiquaries will have it), who was very diligently washing the bathing
clothes at the time of the eruption, was found lying in an attitude of
most resigned death, not far from the washing cauldron in the office
just mentioned.
We were now conducted to the temple, or rather chapel, of Isis. The
chief remains are a covered cloister; the great altar on which was
probably exhibited the statue of the goddess; a little edifice to
protect the sacred well; the pediment of the chapel, with a symbolical
vase in relief; ornaments in stucco, on the front of the main building,
consisting of the lotus, the sistrum, representations of gods,
Harpocrates, Anubis, and other objects of Egyptian worship. The
figures on one side of this temple are Perseus with the Gorgon's head;
on the other side, Mars and Venus, with Cupids bearing the arms of
Mars. We next observe three altars of different sizes. On one of them
is said to have been found the bones of a victim unconsumed, the last
sacrifice having probably been stopped by the dreadful calamity which
had occasioned it. From a niche in the temple was taken a statue of
marble: a woman pressing her lips with her forefinger. Within the area
is a well, where the priest threw the ashes of the sacrifices. We saw
in the Museum at Portici some lovely arabesque paintings, cut from the
walls of the cloister. The foliage which ran round the whole sweep of
the cloister itself is in the finest taste. A tablet of basalt with
Egyptian hieroglyphics was transported from thence to Portici, together
with the following inscription, taken from the front gate of the
chapel:
N. POPIDUS N. F. CELSINUS.
AEDEM ISIDIS TERRAE MOTU COLLAPSAM
A FUNDAMENTO P. SUA RESTITUIT
HUNC DECURIONES OB LIBERALITATEM
CUM ESSET ANNORUM SEX ORDINI SUO
GRATIS ADLEGERUNT.
Behind one of the altars we saw a small room, in which, our guide
informed us, a human skeleton had been discovered, with some fish bones
on a plate near it, and a number of other culinary utensils. We then
passed on to another apartment, almost contiguous, where nothing more
remarkable had been found than an iron crow: an instrument with which
perhaps the unfortunate wretch, whose skeleton I have mentioned above,
had vainly endeavoured to extricate herself, this room being probably
barricaded by the matter of the eruption. This temple, rebuilt, as the
inscription imports, by N. Popidius, had been thrown down by a terrible
earthquake, that likewise destroyed a great part of the city (sixteen
years before the famous eruption of Vesuvius described by Pliny, which
happened in the first year of Titus, A.D. 79) and buried at once both
Herculaneum and Pompeii. As I lingered alone in these environs sacred
to Isis, some time after my companions had quitted them, I fell into
one of those reveries which my imagination is so fond of indulging; and
transporting myself seventeen hundred years back, fancied I was sailing
with the elder Pliny, on the first day's eruption, from Misenum,
towards Retina and Herculaneum; and afterwards towards the villa of his
friend Pomponianus at Stabiæ. The course of our galley seldom carried
us out of sight of Pompeii, and as often as I could divert my attention
from the tremendous spectacle of the eruption, its enormous pillar of
smoke standing conically in the air, and tempests of liquid fire
continually bursting out from the midst of it, then raining down the
sides of the mountain, and flooding this beautiful coast with
innumerable streams of red-hot lava, methought I turned my eyes upon
this fair city, whose houses, villas, and gardens, with their long
ranges of columned courts and porticos, were made visible through the
universal cloud of ashes, by lightning from the mountain; and saw its
distracted inhabitants, men, women, and children, running to and fro in
despair. But in one spot, I mean the court and precincts of the
temple, glared a continual light. It was the blaze of the altars;
towards which I discerned a long-robed train of priests moving in
solemn procession, to supplicate by prayer and sacrifice, at this
destructive moment, the intervention of Isis, who had taught the first
fathers of mankind the culture of the earth, and other arts of civil
life. Methought I could distinguish in their hands all those paintings
and images, sacred to this divinity, brought out on this portentous
occasion, from the subterraneous apartments and mystic cells of the
temple. There was every form of creeping thing and abominable beast,
every Egyptian pollution which the true prophet had seen in vision,
among the secret idolatries of the temple at Jerusalem. The priests
arrived at the altars; I saw them gathered round, and purifying the
three at once with the sacred meal; then, all moving slowly about them,
each with his right hand towards the fire: it was the office of some to
seize the firebrands of the altars, with which they sprinkled holy
water on the numberless bystanders. Then began the prayers, the hymns,
and lustrations of the sacrifice. The priests had laid the victims
with their throats downward upon the altars; were ransacking the
baskets of flour and salt for the knives of slaughter, and proceeding
in haste to the accomplishment of their pious ceremonies;—when one of
our company, who thought me lost, returned with impatience, and calling
me off to some new object, put an end to my strange reverie. We were
now summoned to pay some attention to the scene and corridor of a
theatre, not far from the temple. Little more of its remains being yet
cleared away, we hastened back to a small house and garden in the
neighbourhood of Isis. Sir W. Hamilton (in his account of Pompeii
communicated to the Society of Antiquaries), when speaking of this
house, having taken occasion to give a general idea of the private
mansions of the ancient citizens, I shall take the liberty of
transcribing the whole passage. “A covered cloister, supported by
columns, goes round the house, as was customary in many of the houses
at Pompeii. The rooms in general are very small, and in one, where an
iron bedstead was found, the wall had been pared away to make room for
this bedstead; so that it was not six feet square, and yet this room
was most elegantly painted, and had a tesselated or mosaic floor. The
weight of the matter erupted from Mount Vesuvius has universally
damaged the upper parts of the houses; the lower parts are mostly found
as fresh as at the moment they were buried. The plan of most of the
houses at Pompeii is a square court, with a fountain in the middle, and
small rooms round, communicating with that court. By the construction
and distribution of the houses, it seems, the inhabitants of Pompeii
were fond of privacy. They had few windows towards the street, except
where, from the nature of the plan, they could not avoid it; but even
in that case the windows were placed too high for anyone in the streets
to overlook them. Their houses nearly resemble each other, both as to
distribution of plan, and in the manner of finishing the apartments.
The rooms are in general small, from ten to twelve feet, and from
fourteen to eighteen feet; few communications between room and room,
almost all without windows, except the apartments situated to the
gardens, which are thought to have been allotted to the women. Their
cortiles, or courts, were often surrounded by porticos, even in very
small houses; not but there were covered galleries before the doors of
their apartments to afford shade and shelter. No timber was used in
finishing their apartments, except in doors and windows. The floors
were generally laid in mosaic work. One general taste prevailed of
painting the sides and ceilings of the rooms. Small figures and
medallions of low relief were sometimes introduced. Their great
variety consisted in the colours, and in the choice and delicacy of the
ornaments, in which they displayed great harmony and taste. Their
houses were some two, others three stories high.”
We now pursued our way through what is with some probability thought
to have been the principal street. Its narrowness, however, surprised
me. It is scarcely eleven feet wide, clear of the footways raised on
each side of it. The pavement is formed of a large sort of
flattish-surfaced pebbles; not laid down with the greatest evenness or
regularity. The sideways may be about a yard wide, each paved,
irregularly enough, with small stones. There are guard stones at equal
intervals, to defend the foot passengers from carriages and horses. I
cannot say I found anything either elegant or pleasant in the effect of
this open street. But, as the houses in general present little more
than a dead wall towards it, I do not imagine any views, beyond mere
use and convenience, were consulted in the plan. It led us, however,
through the principal gate or entrance, to a sort of Villa Rustica,
without the limits of the city, which amply recompensed our curiosity.
The arcade surrounding a square garden, or courtyard, offers itself
first to the observer's notice. Into this open a number of coved
rooms, adorned with paintings of figures and arabesques. These rooms,
though small, have a rich and elegant appearance, their ornaments being
very well executed, and retaining still their original freshness. On
the top of the arcade runs a walk or open terrace, leading to the
larger apartments of the higher story. One of the rooms below has a
capacious bow-window, where several panes of glass, somewhat shattered,
were found, but in sufficient preservation to show that the ancients
were not without knowledge of this species of manufacture. As Horace
and most of the old Latin Poets dwell much on the praises of ancient
conviviality, and appear to have valued themselves considerably on
their connoisseurship in wine, it was with great pleasure I descended
into the spacious cellars, sunk and vaulted beneath the arcade
above-mentioned. Several earthen amphoræ were standing in rows against
the walls, but the Massic and Falernian with which they were once
stored, had probably long been totally absorbed by the earth and ashes,
which were now the sole contents of these venerable jars. The ancients
are thought to have used oil, instead of corks, and that the stoppers
were of some matter that could make but little resistance, seems
confirmed by the entrance of that, which now supplied the place with
wine. The skeletons of several of the family who had possessed this
villa were discovered in the cellar, together with brass and silver
coins, and many such ornaments of dress as were of more durable
materials. On re-ascending, we went to the hot and cold baths; thence
to the back of the villa, separated by a passage from the more elegant
part of the house; we were shown some rooms which had been occupied by
the farmer, and from whence several implements of agriculture had been
carried, to enrich the collection at Portici. On the whole, the plan
and construction of this villa are extremely curious, and its situation
very happily chosen. I could not, however, help feeling some regret,
in not having had the good fortune to be present at the first
discovery. It must have been highly interesting to see all its ancient
relics (the greatest part of which are now removed) each in its proper
place; or, at least, in the place they had possessed for so long a
course of years. His Sicilian Majesty has ordered a correct draught of
this villa to be taken, which, it is hoped, will one day be published,
with a complete account of all the discoveries at Pompeii.
Our next walk was to see the Columbarium, a very solemn looking
edifice, where probably the families of higher rank only at Pompeii,
deposited the urns of their deceased kindred. Several of these urns,
with their ashes, and one among the rest of glass, inclosed in another
of earth, were dug out of the sepulchral vaults. A quantity of marble
statues, of but ordinary execution, and colossal masks of terra-cotta,
constituted the chief ornaments of the Columbarium. It is situated
without the gates, on the same side of the city as the villa just
described. There is something characteristically sad in its aspect.
It threw my mind into a melancholy, but not disagreeable tone. Under
the mixed sentiments it inspired, I cast one lingering look back on the
whole affecting scene of ruins, over which I had for several hours been
rambling, and quitted it to return to Naples, not without great
reluctance.
ROME, December 9th.
My last letter was despatched in such a hurry that I had not time to
conclude it. This will be nearly as imperfect; but yet I cannot
forbear writing, having the vanity to believe that you are pleased with
hearing only that I am well.
Your friend H. walked with me this morning in the Loggios of
Raffaelle, and we went afterwards to the Capitol. Nothing delighted me
more in the whole treasury of sculptures, than a figure in alto relievo
of Endymion, reclined on the mountain's brow: his head falls upon his
breast with an ease and gracefulness, of which the Greeks alone had
ever a true conception. Most of the chambers, if you recollect, are
filled with the elegant remains of Adrian's collection. The villa of
that classic emperor at Tivoli, must have been the most charming of
structures. Having travelled into various and remote parts of his
empire, he assembled their most valuable ornaments on one spot. Some
of his apartments were filled with the mysterious images and symbols of
Egypt: others with Eastern tripods and strange Adriatic vases. Though
enraptured with St. Peter's and the Vatican, with the gardens and
groves of pine, that surround this interesting city, still I cannot
help sighing after my native hills and copses, which look (I know not
how it happens) more like the haunts of Pan than any I have seen in
Italy. I eagerly anticipate the placid hours we shall pass, perhaps
next summer, on the wild range which belongs to our sylvan deities. In
their deep fastnesses I will hide myself from the world, and never
allow its glare to bicker through my foliage. You will follow me, I
trust, into retirement, and equally forget the turmoils of mankind.
What have we children of the good Sylvanus to do with the miseries or
triumphs of the savages that prowl about London? Let us forget there
exists such a city, and when reposing amongst ivy and blossoms of
bloom, imagine ourselves in the ancient dominions of Saturn, and dream
that we see him pass along with his rustic attendants.
AUGSBURG, January 20th, 1781.
For these ten days past have I been traversing Lapland: winds
whistling in my ears, and cones showering down upon my head from the
wilds of pine through which our route conducted us. Often were we
obliged to travel by moonlight, and I leave you to imagine the awful
aspect of the Tyrol mountains buried in snow.
I scarcely ventured to utter an exclamation of surprise, though
prompted by some of the most striking scenes in nature, lest I should
interrupt the sacred silence that prevails, during winter, in these
boundless solitudes. The streams are frozen, and mankind petrified,
for aught I know to the contrary, since whole days have we journeyed on
without perceiving the slightest hint of their existence.
I never before felt the pleasure of discovering a smoke rising from a
cottage, or of hearing a heifer lowing in its stall; and could not have
supposed there was so much satisfaction in perceiving two or three fur
caps, with faces under them, peeping out of their concealments. I wish
you had been with me, exploring this savage region: wrapped up in our
bear-skins, we should have followed its secret avenues, and penetrated,
perhaps, into some enchanted cave lined with sables, where, like the
heroes of northern romances, we should have been waited upon by dwarfs,
and sung drowsily to repose. I think it no bad scheme to sleep away
five or six years to come, since every hour affairs are growing more
and more turbulent. Well, let them! provided we may enjoy, in
security, the shades of our thickets.
[The following Letters, written in a second Excursion, which was
interrupted by a dangerous illness, are added on account of their
affinity to some of the preceding.]
COLOGNE, May 28th, 1782.
This is the first day of summer; the oak leaves expand, the roses
blow, butterflies are about, and I have spirits enough to write to
you. We have had clouded skies this fortnight past, and roads like the
Slough of Despond. Last Wednesday we were benighted on a dismal plain,
apparently boundless. The moon cast a sickly gleam, and now and then a
blue meteor glided along the morass which lay before us.
After much difficulty we gained an avenue, and in an hour's time
discovered something like a gateway, shaded by crooked elms and crowned
by a cluster of turrets. Here we paused and knocked; no one answered.
We repeated our knocks; the stout oaken gate returned a hollow sound;
the horses coughed, their riders blew their horns. At length the bars
fell, and we entered—by what means I am ignorant, for no human being
appeared.
A labyrinth of narrow winding alleys, dark as the vaults of a
cathedral, opened to our view. We kept wandering along, at least
twenty minutes, between lofty mansions with grated windows, and strange
galleries, projecting one over another, from which depended innumerable
uncouth figures and crosses, in iron-work, swinging to and fro with the
wind. At the end of this gloomy maze we found a long street, not
fifteen feet wide, I am certain; the houses still loftier than those in
the alleys, the windows thicker barred, and the gibbets (for I know not
what else to call them) more frequent. Here and there we saw lights
glimmering in the highest stories, and arches on the right and left,
which seemed to lead into retired courts and deeper darkness.
Along one of these recesses we were jumbled, over such pavement as I
hope you may never tread upon; and, after parading round it, went out
at the same arch whence we came in. This procession seemed at first
very mystical, but it was too soon accounted for by our postillions,
who confessed they had lost their way. A council was held amongst them
in form, and then we struck into another labyrinth of hideous edifices,
habitations I will not venture to call them, as not a creature stirred;
though the rumbling of our carriages was echoed by all the vaults and
arches.
Towards midnight we rested a few minutes, and a head poking out of a
casement directed us to the hotel of Der Heilige Geist, where an
apartment, thirty feet square, was prepared for our reception.
INSPRUCK, June 4th.
No sooner had we passed Fuezen than we entered the Tyrol, and the
country of wonders. Those lofty peaks, those steeps of wood I delight
in, lay before us. Innumerable clear springs gush out on every side,
overhung by luxuriant shrubs in blossom. The day was mild, though
overcast, and a soft blue vapour rested upon the hills, above which
rise mountains that bear plains of snow into the clouds.
At night we lay at Nasariet, a village buried amongst savage
promontories. The next morning we advanced, in bright sunshine, into
smooth lawns on the slopes of mountains, scattered over with larches,
whose delicate foliage formed a light green veil to the azure sky.
Flights of birds were merrily travelling from spray to spray. I ran
delighted into this world of boughs, whilst C. sat down to draw the
huts which are scattered about for the shelter of herds, and discover
themselves amongst the groves in the most picturesque manner.
These little edifices are uncommonly neat, and excite those ideas of
pastoral life to which I am so fondly attached. The turf from whence
they rise is enamelled, in the strict sense of the word, with flowers.
A sort of bluebell predominated, brighter than ultramarine; here and
there auriculas looked out of the moss, and I often reposed upon tufts
of ranunculus. Bushes of phillerea were very frequent, the sun shining
full on their glossy leaves. An hour passed away swiftly in these
pleasant groves, where I lay supine under a lofty fir, a tower of
leaves and branches.
PADUA, June 14th.
Once more, said I to myself, I shall have the delight of beholding
Venice; so got into an open chaise, the strangest curricle that ever
man was jolted in, and drove furiously along the causeways by the
Brenta, into whose deep waters it is a mercy, methinks, I was not
precipitated. Fiesso, the Dolo, the Mira, with all their gardens,
statues, and palaces, seemed flying after each other, so rapid was our
motion.
After a few hours' confinement between close steeps, the scene opened
to the wide shore of Fusina. I looked up (for I had scarcely time to
look before) and beheld a troubled sky, shot with vivid red, the
Lagunes tinted like the opal, and the islands of a glowing
flame-colour. The lofty mountains of the distant continent appeared of
a deep melancholy grey, and innumerable gondolas were passing to and
fro in all their blackness. The sun, after a long struggle, was
swallowed up in the tempestuous clouds.
In an hour we drew near to Venice, and saw its world of domes rising
out of the waters. A fresh breeze bore the toll of innumerable bells
by my ear. Sadness came over me as I entered the great canal, and
recognised (the scene of many a strange adventure) those solemn
palaces, with their lofty arcades and gloomy arches, beneath which I
had so often sat.
The Venetians being mostly at their villas on the Brenta, the town
appeared deserted. I visited, however, all my old haunts in the Place
of St. Mark, ran up the Campanile, and rowed backwards and forwards,
opposite the Ducal Palace, by moonlight. They are building a spacious
quay, near the street of the Sclavonians, fronting the island of San
Giorgio Maggiore, where I remained alone at least an hour, following
the wanderings of the moon amongst mountainous clouds, and listening to
the waters dashing against marble steps.
I closed my evening at my friend M. de R.'s, and sung over the airs I
composed in the dawn of our acquaintance.
Next morning the wind was uncommonly violent for the mild season of
June, and the canals much agitated; but I was determined to visit the
Lido once more, and bathe on my accustomed beach. The pines in the
garden of the Carthusians were nodding as I passed by in my gondola,
which was very poetically buffeted by the waves.
Traversing the desert of locusts, I hailed the Adriatic, and plunged
into its bosom. The sea, delightfully cool, refreshed me to such a
degree, that, upon my return to Venice, I found myself able to thread
its labyrinths of streets, canals, and alleys, in search of amber and
Oriental curiosities. The variety of exotic merchandize, the perfume
of coffee, the shade of awnings, and the sight of Greeks and Asiatics
sitting crossed-legged under them, made me think myself in the bazaars
of Constantinople.
'Tis certain my beloved town of Venice ever recalls a series of
Eastern ideas and adventures. I cannot help thinking St. Mark's a
mosque, and the neighbouring palace some vast seraglio, full of
arabesque saloons, embroidered sofas, and voluptuous Circassians.
PADUA, June 19th.
The morning was delightful, and St. Anthony's bells in full chime. A
shower which had fallen in the night rendered the air so cool and
grateful, that Mad. de R. and myself determined to seize the
opportunity and go to Mirabello, a country house, which Algarotti had
inhabited, situate amongst the Euganean hills, eight or nine miles from
Padua.
Our road lay between poplar alleys and fields of yellow corn,
overhung by garlands of vine, most beautifully green. I soon found
myself in the midst of my favourite hills, upon slopes covered with
clover, and shaded by cherry-trees. Bending down their boughs I
gathered the fruit, and grew cooler and happier every instant.
We dined very comfortably in a strange hall, where I pitched my
pianoforte, and sang the voluptuous airs of Bertoni's Armida. That
enchantress might have raised her palace in this situation; and, had I
been Rinaldo, I certainly should not very soon have abandoned it.
After dinner we drank coffee under some branching lemons, which
sprang from a terrace, commanding a boundless scene of towers and
villas; tall cypresses and shrubby hillocks rising, like islands, out
of a sea of corn and vine.
Evening drawing on, and the breeze blowing fresh from the distant
Adriatic, I reclined on a slope, and turned my eyes anxiously towards
Venice; then upon some little fields hemmed in by chestnuts in blossom,
where the peasants were making their hay, and, from thence, to a
mountain, crowned by a circular grove of fir and cypress.
In the centre of these shades some monks have a comfortable nest;
perennial springs, a garden of delicious vegetables, and, I dare say, a
thousand luxuries besides, which the poor mortals below never dream of.
Had it not been late, I should certainly have climbed up to the
grove, and asked admittance into its recesses; but having no mind to
pass the night in this eyrie, I contented myself with the distant
prospect.
ROME, June 29th.
It is needless for me to say I wish you with me: you know I do; you
know how delightfully we should ramble about Rome together. This
evening, instead of jiggeting along the Corso with the puppets in blue
and silver coats, and green and gold coaches, instead of bowing to
Cardinal this, and dotting my head to Abbé t'other, I strolled to the
Coliseo, found out my old haunts amongst its arches, and enjoyed the
pure transparent sky between groves of slender cypress. Then bending
my course to the Palatine Mount, I passed under the Arch of Titus, and
gained the Capitol, which was quite deserted, the world, thank Heaven,
being all slip-slopping in coffee-houses, or staring at a few painted
boards patched up before the Colonna palace, where, by the by, to-night
is a grand rinfresco for all the dolls and doll-fanciers of
Rome. I heard their buzz at a distance; that was enough for me!
Soothed by the rippling of waters, I descended the Capitoline stairs,
and leaned several minutes against one of the Egyptian lionesses. This
animal has no knack at oracles, or else it would have murmured out to
me the situation of that secret cave, where the wolf suckled Romulus
and his brother.
About nine, I returned home, and am now writing to you like a prophet
on the housetop. Behind me rustle the thickets of Villa Medici;
before, lies roof beyond roof and dome beyond dome: these are dimly
discovered; but don't you see the great cupola of cupolas, twinkling
with illuminations? The town is real, I am certain; but, surely, that
structure of fire must be visionary.
ROME, June 30th.
As soon as the sun declined I strolled into the Villa Medici; but
finding it haunted by fine pink and yellow people, nay, even by the
Spanish Ambassador, and several more dignified carcasses, I moved off
to the Negroni garden. There I found what my soul desired, thickets of
jasmine, and wild spots overgrown with bay; long alleys of cypress
totally neglected, and almost impassable through the luxuriance of the
vegetation; on every side antique fragments, vases, sarcophagi, and
altars sacred to the Manes, in deep, shady recesses, which I am certain
the Manes must love. The air was filled with the murmurs of water,
trickling down basins of porphyry, and losing itself amongst overgrown
weeds and grasses.
Above the wood and between its boughs appeared several domes, and a
strange lofty tower. I will not say they belong to St. Maria Maggiore;
no, they are fanes and porticos dedicated to Cybele, who delights in
sylvan situations. The forlorn air of this garden, with its high and
reverend shades, make me imagine it as old as the baths of Dioclesian,
which peep over one of its walls. Yes, I am persuaded some consul or
prætor dwelt here only fifty years ago. Would to God, our souls might
be transported to such solitary spots! where we might glide along the
dark alleys together, when bodies were gone to bed. I discovered a
little cave that would just suit us; celandine, Venus' hair, and a
thousand delicate plants, growing downwards from the cave; beneath lies
a clear spring.
At the close of day, I repaired to the platform before the stately
porticos of the Lateran. There I sat, folded up in myself. Some
priests jarred the iron gates behind me. I looked over my shoulder
through the portals, into the portico. Night began to fill it with
darkness. Upon turning round, the sad waste of the Campagna met my
eyes, and I wished to go home, but had not the power. A pressure, like
that I have felt in horrid dreams, seemed to fix me to the pavement.
I was thus in a manner forced to view the dreary scene, the long line
of aqueducts and lonesome towers. Perhaps the unwholesome vapours,
rising like blue mists from the plains, affected me. I know not how it
was; but I never experienced such strange, such chilling terrors.
About ten o'clock, thank God, the spell dissolved; I found my limbs at
liberty, and returned home.
NAPLES, July 8th.
The sea-breezes restored me to life. I set the heat of midday at
defiance, and do not believe in the horrors of the sirocco. Yesterday
I passed at Portici, with Lady H. The morning, refreshing and
pleasant, invited us at an early hour into the open air. We drove, in
an uncovered chaise, to the royal Bosquetto: no other carriage than Sir
W.'s is allowed to enter its alleys. We breathed a fresh air untainted
by dust or garlic. Every now and then, amidst wild bushes of ilex and
myrtle, one finds a graceful antique statue, sometimes a fountain, and
often a rude knoll, where the rabbits sit undisturbed, contemplating
the blue glittering bay; at least, I should do so, if I were a rabbit.
The walls of this shady inclosure are lined with Peruvian aloes,
whose white blossoms, scented like those of the magnolia, form the most
magnificent clusters. They are plants to salute respectfully as one
passes by, such is their size and dignity. In the midst of the
thickets stands the King's Pagliaro, surrounded by gardens with hedges
of luxuriant jasmine, whose branches are suffered to flaunt as much as
Nature pleases.
The morning sun darted his first rays on their flowers just as I
entered this pleasant spot. The hut looks as if erected in the days of
fairy pastoral life; its neatness is quite delightful. Bright tiles
compose the floor; straw, nicely platted, covers the walls. In the
middle of the room, you see a table spread with a beautiful Persian
carpet; at one end, four niches with mattresses of silk, where the King
and his favourites repose after dinner; at the other, a white marble
basin. Mount a little staircase, and you find yourself in another
apartment, formed by the roof, which being entirely composed of
glistening straw, casts that comfortable yellow glow I admire. From
the windows you look into the garden, not flourished with parterres,
but divided into plats of fragrant herbs and flowers, with here and
there a little marble table, or basin of the purest water.
These sequestered inclosures are cultivated with the greatest care,
and so frequently watered, that I observed lettuces, and a variety of
other vegetables, as fresh as in our green England.
The Grand Chartreuse has exceeded my expectations; it is more
wonderfully wild than I can describe, or even you can imagine. It has
possessed me to such a degree that at present I can neither think,
speak, nor write upon any other subject.
June 5th.—I left Geneva, and after passing through a
succession of valleys between innumerable mountains, and after crossing
a variety of picturesque bridges, thrown over the streams which water
them, arrived at Aix, in Savoy, famous for its baths, which, as
disagreeable things are generally the most salutary, ought doubtless to
be of the greatest efficacy; for more uninviting objects one seldom
meets with.
Advancing beneath a little eminence, partly rock, partly wall, we
discovered the principal bath, filled with a blue reeking water, whose
very steam is sufficient to seethe one without further assistance.
Scarce had we stood looking on it a minute, before down dashed three
or four dirty boys, as copper-coloured as the natives of Bengal; who by
splashing us all over, and swimming about a la crapaudine,
convinced us that it was not their fault, if we would not have
companions in the delights of bathing. I soon hurried away from this
salubrious cauldron, and stepping into a little chapel hard by, where
they were singing vespers, prayed heartily to the Virgin, that I might
never need the assistance of those wonder-working waters over which she
presides. As there was but little company in the town, and little
amusement, I went to bed at nine, and rose at four the next morning,
that I might reach before sunset the celebrated road, which Charles
Emanuel had cut through a rocky mountain. My plan succeeded, and after
dining at Chambery (a place scarce worth speaking of to you), and
passing by a cataract that throws itself from a lofty steep, I began to
discover a beautiful woody vale, terminated on one side by the hallowed
cliffs of the Grand Chartreuse, and on the other by the mountain which
Charles Emanuel had perforated in so extraordinary a manner. The sun
was just sinking in a brilliant cloud, which seemed to repose on a
swelling hill, covered with cattle, when we quitted the cheerful
valley, and began to descend between two ridges of precipices, that at
some distance had the appearance of towering ramparts. Pursuing our
route, we found ourselves in a deep cleft, surrounded by caverns,
echoing with a thousand rills which trickle down their sides, and
mingling their murmurs with the rattling of our wheels and the steps of
our horses, infinitely repeated and multiplied, formed, altogether, the
strangest combination of sounds that ever reached my ears. The road
itself is admirably cut, and hewn with such neatness that, were it not
for the savage and desolate air of its environs, I should have imagined
myself approaching some grand castle or considerable city. Toward the
summits of the precipices, that in some places rise to a majestic
elevation (the two sides here and there nearly meeting in an arch),
hang light woods of glossy green, which, being agitated by a gentle
wind, cast a moving shadow over the cleft beneath, and, at a little
distance, gave our road the appearance of a chequered pavement.
Having wound through the bosom of the mountain for some time, I was
struck by the unexpected appearance of a grand edifice, resembling a
vast portal, supported by Doric pilasters, and crowned with an
ornamented pediment. Upon my nearer approach I found a smooth tablet
filling up the space I had allotted for an entrance, on which was
engraven a pompous Latin inscription, setting forth with what
incredible labour and perseverance his Majesty, Charles Emanuel the
Second of Sardinia, Cyprus, and Jerusalem, King, had cut this road
through the mountain; which great enterprise, though unattempted by the
Romans, and despaired of by other nations, was executed under his
auspices. I very sincerely wished him joy, and, as the evening was
growing rather cool, was not sorry to perceive, through an opening in
the rocks, a wide-extended plain, interspersed with meadows, embosomed
by woods, in which I distinguished Les Echelles, a village, where we
were to lie, with its chimneys smoking, under the base of one of the
Carthusian mountains, round which had gathered a concourse of red and
greyish clouds.
The twilight was beginning to prevail when we reached our inn, and
very glad I was to leave it at the first dawn of the next day. We were
now obliged to abandon our coach; and taking horse, proceeded towards
the mountains, which, with the valleys between them, form what is
called the Desert of the Carthusians.
In an hour's time we were drawing near, and could discern the opening
of a narrow valley overhung by shaggy precipices, above which rose
lofty peaks, covered to their very summits with wood. We could now
distinguish the roar of torrents, and a confusion of strange sounds,
issuing from dark forests of pine. I confess at this moment I was
somewhat startled. I experienced some disagreeable sensations, and it
was not without a degree of unwillingness that I left the gay pastures
and enlivening sunshine, to throw myself into this gloomy and disturbed
region. How dreadful, thought I, must be the despair of those who
enter it never to return!
But after the first impression was worn away, all my curiosity
redoubled; and desiring our guide to put forward with greater speed, we
made such good haste, that the meadows and cottages of the plain were
soon left far behind, and we found ourselves on the banks of the
torrent, whose agitation answered the ideas which its sounds had
inspired. Into the midst of these troubled waters we were obliged to
plunge with our horses, and, when landed on the opposite shore, were by
no means displeased to have passed them.
We had now closed with the forests, over which the impending rocks
diffused an additional gloom. The day grew obscured by clouds, and the
sun no longer enlightened the distant plains, when we began to ascend
towards the entrance of the desert, marked by two pinnacles of rock far
above us, beyond which a melancholy twilight prevailed. Every moment
we approached nearer and nearer to the sounds which had alarmed us;
and, suddenly emerging from the woods, we discovered several mills and
forges, with many complicated machines of iron, hanging over the
torrent, that threw itself headlong from a cleft in the precipices; on
one side of which I perceived our road winding along, till it was
stopped by a venerable gateway. A rock above one of the forges was
hollowed into the shape of a round tower, of no great size, but
resembling very much an altar in figure; and, what added greatly to the
grandeur of the object, was a livid flame continually palpitating upon
it, which the gloom of the valley rendered perfectly discernible.
The road, at a small distance from this remarkable scene, was become
so narrow, that, had my horse started, I should have been but too well
acquainted with the torrent that raged beneath; dismounting, therefore,
I walked towards the edge of the great fall, and there, leaning on a
fragment of cliff, looked down into the foaming gulph, where the waters
were hurled along over broken pines, pointed rocks, and stakes of
iron. Then, lifting up my eyes, I took in the vast extent of the
forests, frowning on the brows of the mountains.
It was here first I felt myself seized by the genius of the place,
and penetrated with veneration of its religious gloom; and, I believe,
uttered many extravagant exclamations; but, such was the dashing of the
wheels, and the rushing of the waters at the bottom of the forges, that
what I said was luckily undistinguishable.
I was not yet, however, within the consecrated inclosure, and
therefore not perfectly contented; so, leaving my fragment, I paced in
silence up the path which led to the great portal. When we arrived
before it, I rested a moment, and leaning against the stout oaken gate,
which closed up the entrance to this unknown region, felt at my heart a
certain awe, that brought to my mind the sacred terror of those, in
ancient days, going to be admitted into the Eleusinian mysteries.
My guide gave two knocks; after a solemn pause, the gate was slowly
opened, and all our horses having passed through it, was again
carefully closed.
I now found myself in a narrow dell, surrounded on every side by
peaks of the mountains, rising almost beyond my sight, and shelving
downwards till their bases were hidden by the foam and spray of the
water, over which hung a thousand withered and distorted trees. The
rocks seemed crowding upon me, and, by their particular situation,
threatened to obstruct every ray of light; but, notwithstanding the
menacing appearance of the prospect, I still kept following my guide,
up a craggy ascent, partly hewn through a rock, and bordered by the
trunks of ancient fir-trees, which formed a fantastic barrier, till we
came to a dreary and exposed promontory, impending directly over the
dell.
The woods are here clouded with darkness, and the torrents, rushing
with additional violence, are lost in the gloom of the caverns below;
every object, as I looked downwards from my path, that hung midway
between the base and the summit of the cliff, was horrid and woeful.
The channel of the torrent sunk deep amidst frightful crags, and the
pale willows and wreathed roots spreading over it, answered my ideas of
those dismal abodes, where, according to the druidical mythology, the
ghosts of conquered warriors were bound. I shivered whilst I was
regarding these regions of desolation, and, quickly lifting up my eyes
to vary the scene, I perceived a range of whitish cliffs, glistening
with the light of the sun, to emerge from these melancholy forests.
On a fragment that projected over the chasm, and concealed for a
moment its terrors, I saw a cross, on which was written VIA COELI. The
cliffs being the heaven to which I now aspired, we deserted the edge of
the precipice, and ascending, came to a retired nook of the rocks, in
which several copious rills had worn irregular grottoes. Here we
reposed an instant, and were enlivened with a few sunbeams, piercing
the thickets and gilding the waters that bubbled from the rock, over
which hung another cross, inscribed with this short sentence, which the
situation rendered wonderfully pathetic, O SPES UNICA! the fervent
exclamation of some wretch disgusted with the world, whose only
consolation was found in this retirement.
We quitted this solitary cross to enter a thick forest of
beech-trees, that screened in some measure the precipices on which they
grew, catching, however, every instant terrifying glimpses of the
torrent below. Streams gushed from every crevice in the cliffs, and
falling over the mossy roots and branches of the beech, hastened to
join the great torrent, athwart which I every now and then remarked
certain tottering bridges, and sometimes could distinguish a Carthusian
crossing over to his hermitage, that just peeped above the woody
labyrinths on the opposite shore.
Whilst I was proceeding amongst the innumerable trunks of the beech
trees, my guide pointed out to me a peak, rising above the others,
which he called the Throne of Moses. If that prophet had received his
revelations in this desert, no voice need have declared it holy ground,
for every part of it is stamped with such a sublimity of character as
would alone be sufficient to impress the idea.
Having left these woods behind, and crossing a bridge of many lofty
arches, I shuddered once more at the impetuosity of the torrent; and,
mounting still higher, came at length to a kind of platform before two
cliffs, joined by an arch of rock, under which we were to pursue our
road. Below we beheld again innumerable streams, turbulently
precipitating themselves from the woods, and lashing the base of the
mountains, mossed over with a dark sea-green.
In this deep hollow such mists and vapours prevailed as hindered my
prying into its recesses; besides, such was the dampness of the air,
that I hastened gladly from its neighbourhood, and passing under the
second portal, beheld with pleasure the sunbeams gilding the Throne of
Moses.
It was now about ten o'clock, and my guide assured me I should soon
discover the convent. Upon this information I took new courage, and
continued my route on the edge of the rocks, till we struck into
another gloomy grove. After turning about it for some time, we entered
again into the glare of daylight, and saw a green valley skirted by
ridges of cliffs and sweeps of wood before us. Towards the farther end
of this inclosure, on a gentle acclivity, rose the revered turrets of
the Carthusians, which extend in a long line on the brow of the hill;
beyond them a woody amphitheatre majestically presents itself,
terminated by spires of rock and promontories lost amongst the clouds.
The roar of the torrent was now but faintly distinguishable, and all
the scenes of horror and confusion I had passed, were succeeded by a
sacred and profound calm. I traversed the valley with a thousand
sensations I despair of describing, and stood before the gate of the
convent with as much awe as some novice or candidate, newly arrived, to
solicit the holy retirement of the order.
As admittance is more readily granted to the English than to almost
any other nation, it was not long before the gates opened, and whilst
the porter ordered our horses to the stable, we entered a court watered
by two fountains and built round with lofty edifices, characterized by
a noble simplicity.
The interior portal, opening, discovered an arched aisle, extending
till the perspective nearly met, along which windows, but scantily
distributed between the pilasters, admitted a pale solemn light, just
sufficient to distinguish the objects with a picturesque uncertainty.
We had scarcely set our feet on the pavement when the monks began to
issue from an arch, about half way down, and passing in a long
succession from their chapel, bowed reverently with much humility and
meekness, and dispersed in silence, leaving one of their body alone in
the aisle.
The Father Coadjutor (for he only remained) advanced towards us with
great courtesy, and welcomed us in a manner which gave me far more
pleasure than all the frivolous salutations and affected greetings so
common in the world beneath. After asking us a few indifferent
questions, he called one of the lay brothers, who live in the convent
under less severe restrictions than the fathers whom they serve, and
ordering him to prepare our apartment, conducted us to a large square
hall with casement windows, and, what was more comfortable, an enormous
chimney, whose hospitable hearth blazed with a fire of dry aromatic
fir, on each side of which were two doors that communicated with the
neat little cells destined for our bedchambers.
Whilst he was placing us round the fire, a ceremony by no means
unimportant in the cold climate of these upper regions, a bell rang
which summoned him to prayers. After charging the lay brother to set
before us the best fare their desert afforded, he retired, and left us
at full liberty to examine our chambers.
The weather lowered, and the casements permitted very little light to
enter the apartment: but on the other side it was amply enlivened by
the gleams of the fire, that spread all over a certain comfortable air,
which even sunshine but rarely diffuses. Whilst the showers descended
with great violence, the lay brother and another of his companions were
placing an oval table, very neatly carved and covered with the finest
linen, in the middle of the hall; and, before we had examined a number
of portraits which were hung in all the panels of the wainscot, they
called us to a dinner widely different from what might have been
expected in so dreary a situation. The best fish, the most exquisite
fruits, and a variety of dishes, excellent without the assistance of
meat, were served up with an order and arrangement that showed it was
not the first time they had entertained in the noblest manner. But I
was not more struck with the delicacy of the entertainment, than with
the extreme cleanness and English-like neatness of the whole apartment
and its furniture. A marble fountain, particularly, gave it a very
agreeable aid, and the water that fell from it into a porphyry shell
was remarkable for its clearness and purity. Our attendant friar was
helping us to some Burgundy, which we pronounced of very respectable
antiquity, when the Coadjutor returned, accompanied by two other
fathers, the Secretary and Procurator, whom he presented to us. You
would have been both charmed and surprised with the cheerful
resignation that appeared in their countenances, and with the easy turn
of their conversation.
The Coadjutor, though equally kind, was as yet more reserved: his
countenance, however, spoke for him without the aid of words, and there
was in his manner a mixture of dignity and humility, which could not
fail to interest. There were moments when the recollection of some
past event seemed to shade his countenance with a melancholy that
rendered it still more affecting. I should suspect he formerly
possessed a great share of natural vivacity (something of it being
still, indeed, apparent in his more unguarded moments); but this spirit
is almost entirely subdued by the penitence and mortification of the
order.
The secretary displayed a very considerable share of knowledge in the
political state of Europe, furnished probably by the extensive
correspondence these fathers preserve with the three hundred and sixty
subordinate convents, dispersed throughout all those countries where
the court of Rome still maintains its influence.
In the course of our conversation they asked me innumerable questions
about England, where formerly, they said, many monasteries had belonged
to their order; and principally that of W., which they had learnt to be
now in my possession.
The Secretary, almost with tears in his eyes, beseeched me to revere
these consecrated edifices, and to preserve their remains, for the sake
of St. Hugo, their canonized Prior. I replied greatly to his
satisfaction, and then declaimed so much in favour of Saint Bruno, and
the holy prior of Witham, that the good fathers grew exceedingly
delighted with the conversation, and made me promise to remain some
days with them. I readily complied with their request, and, continuing
in the same strain, that had so agreeably affected their ears, was soon
presented with the works of Saint Bruno, whom I so zealously admired.
After we had sat extolling them, and talking upon much the same sort
of subjects for about an hour, the Coadjutor proposed a walk amongst
the cloisters and galleries, as the weather would not admit of any
longer excursion. He leading the way, we ascended a flight of steps,
which brought us to a gallery, on each side of which a vast number of
pictures, representing the dependent convents, were ranged; for I was
now in the capital of the order, where the General resides, and from
whence he issues forth his commands to his numerous subjects; who
depute the superiors of their respective convents, whether situated in
the wilds of Calabria, the forests of Poland, or in the remotest
districts of Portugal and Spain, to assist at the grand chapter, held
annually under him, a week or two after Easter.
This reverend father Dom Biclét died about ten days before our
arrival: a week ago they elected the Pere Robinét prior of the
Carthusian convent at Paris in his room, and two fathers were now on
their route to apprise him of their choice, and to salute him General
of the Carthusians. During this interregnum the Coadjutor holds the
first rank in the temporal, and the Grand Vicaire in the spiritual,
affairs of the order; both of which are very extensive.
If I may judge from the representations of the different convents,
which adorn this gallery, there are many highly worthy of notice, for
the singularity of their situations, and the wild beauties of the
landscapes which surround them. The Venetian Chartreuse, placed in a
woody island, and that of Rome, rising from amongst groups of majestic
ruins, struck me as peculiarly pleasing. Views of the English
monasteries hung formerly in such a gallery, but had been destroyed by
fire, together with the old convent. The list only remains, with but a
very few written particulars concerning them.
Having amused myself for some time with the pictures, and the
descriptions the Coadjutor gave me of them, we quitted the gallery and
entered a kind of chapel, in which were two altars with lamps burning
before them, on each side of a lofty portal. This opened into a grand
coved hall, adorned with historical paintings of St. Bruno's life, and
the portraits of the Generals of the order, since the year of the great
founder's death (1085) to the present time. Under these portraits are
the stalls for the Superiors, who assist at the grand convocation. In
front appears the General's throne; above, hangs a representation of
the canonized Bruno, crowned with stars.
Were I, after walking along the dim cloisters, and passing through
the antechapel, faintly illuminated by a solitary lamp, suddenly to
enter this hall at midnight, when the convocation is assembled, and the
synod of venerable fathers, all in solemn order, surrounding the
successor of Bruno, it would be a long while, I believe, before I could
recover from the surprise of so august a spectacle. It must indeed be
a very imposing sight: the gravity they preserve on these occasions,
their venerable age (for Superiors cannot be chosen young), and the
figures of their deceased Generals, dimly discovered above, may surely
be allowed to awe even an heretical spectator into a momentary respect
for the order. For my own part, I must confess, that the hall, though
divested of all this accompaniment, filled me with a veneration I
scarcely knew how to account for; perhaps the portraits inspired it.
They were all well executed, and mostly in attitudes of adoration. The
form of Bruno was almost lost in the splendour of the stars which
hovered over him. I could in some moments fancy myself capable of
plunging into the horror of a desert, and foregoing all the vanities
and delights of the world, to secure my memory so sublime a
consecration.
The Coadjutor seemed charmed with the respect with which I looked
round on these holy objects; and if the hour of vespers had not been
drawing near, we should have spent more time in the contemplation of
Bruno's miracles, portrayed on the lower panels of the hall. We left
that room to enter a winding passage (lighted by windows in the roof),
that brought us to a cloister six hundred feet in length, from which
branched off two others, joining a fourth of the same most
extraordinary dimensions. Vast ranges of slender pillars extend round
the different courts of the edifice, many of which are thrown into
gardens belonging to particular cells.
We entered one of them: its inhabitant received us with much
civility, walked before us through a little corridor that looked on his
garden, showed us his narrow dwelling, and, having obtained leave of
the Coadjutor to speak, gave us his benediction, and beheld us depart
with concern. Nature has given this poor monk very considerable
talents for painting. He has drawn the portrait of the late General,
in a manner that discovers great facility of execution; but he is not
allowed to exercise his pencil on any other subject, lest he should be
amused; and amusement in this severe order is a crime. He had so
subdued, so mortified an appearance, that I was not sorry to hear the
bell, which summoned the Coadjutor to prayers, and prevented my
entering any more of the cells. We continued straying from cloister to
cloister, and wandering along the winding passages and intricate
galleries of this immense edifice, whilst the Coadjutor was assisting
at vespers.
In every part of the structure reigned the most death-like calm: no
sound reached my ears but the “minute drops from off the eaves.” I sat
down in a niche of the cloister, and fell into a profound reverie, from
which I was recalled by the return of our conductor; who, I believe,
was almost tempted to imagine, from the cast of my countenance, that I
was deliberating whether I should not remain with them for ever.
But I soon roused myself, and testified some impatience to see the
great chapel, at which we at length arrived, after traversing another
labyrinth of cloisters. The gallery immediately before its entrance
appeared quite gay, in comparison with the others I had passed, and
owes its cheerfulness to a large window (ornamented with slabs of
polished marble), that admits the view of a lovely wood. Being neatly
glazed, and free from paintings or Gothic ornaments, it allows a full
blaze of light to dart on the chapel door; which is also adorned with
marble, in a plain but noble style of architecture.
The father sacristan stood ready on the steps of the portal to grant
us admittance; and, throwing open the valves, we entered the chapel and
were struck by the justness of its proportions, the simple majesty of
the arched roof, and the mild solemn light, equally diffused over every
part of the edifice. No tawdry ornaments, no glaring pictures,
disgraced the sanctity of the place. The high altar, standing distinct
from the walls, which were hung with a rich velvet, was the only object
on which many ornaments were lavished, and even there the elegance of
the workmanship concealed the glare of the materials, which were
silver, solid gold, and the most costly gems. It being Whit-Sunday,
this altar was covered with statues of gold, shrines, and candelabra of
the stateliest shape and most delicate execution. Four of the latter,
of a gigantic size, were placed on the steps; which, together with part
of the inlaid floor within the choir, were spread with beautiful
carpets.
The illumination of so many tapers striking on the shrines, censers,
and pillars of polished jasper, sustaining the canopy of the altar,
produced a wonderful effect; and, as the rest of the chapel was visible
only by the faint external light admitted from above, the splendour and
dignity of the altar was enhanced by contrast. I retired a moment from
it, and seating myself in one of the furthermost stalls of the choir,
looked towards it, and fancied it had risen like an exhalation.
Here I remained several minutes breathing nothing but incense, and
should not have quitted my station soon, had I not been apprehensive of
disturbing the devotions of two aged fathers who had just entered, and
were prostrating themselves before the steps of the altar. These
venerable figures added greatly to the solemnity of the scene; which as
the day declined increased every moment in splendour; for the sparkling
of several lamps of chased silver that hung from the roofs, and the
gleaming of nine huge tapers which I had not before noticed, began to
be visible just as I left the chapel.
Passing through the sacristy, where lay several piles of rich
embroidered vestments, purposely displayed for our inspection, we
regained the cloister which led to our apartment, where the supper was
ready prepared. We had scarcely finished it, when the Coadjutor, and
the fathers who had accompanied us before, returned, and ranging
themselves round the fire, resumed the conversation about St. Bruno.
Finding me very piously disposed by the wonders I had seen in the day
to listen to things of a miraculous nature, they began to relate the
inspirations they had received from him, and his mysterious
apparitions. I was all attention, respect, and credulity. The old
Secretary worked himself up to such a pitch of enthusiasm, that I am
very much inclined to imagine he believed, in these moments, all the
marvellous events he related. The Coadjutor being less violent in his
pretensions to St. Bruno's modern miracles, contented himself with
enumerating the noble works he had done in the days of his fathers, and
in the old time before them.
It grew rather late before my kind hosts had finished their
narrations, and I was not sorry, after all the exercise I had taken, to
return to my cell, where everything invited to repose. I was charmed
with the neatness and oddity of my little apartment; its cabin-like
bed, oratory, and ebony crucifix; in short, everything it contained;
not forgetting the aromatic odour of the pine, with which it was
roofed, floored, and wainscoted. The night was luckily dark. Had the
moon appeared, I could not have prevailed upon myself to have quitted
her till very late; but, as it happened, I crept into my cabin, and was
by “whispering winds soon lulled asleep.”
Eight o'clock struck next morning before I awoke; when, to my great
sorrow, I found the peaks, which rose above the convent, veiled in
vapours, and the rain descending with violence.
After we had breakfasted by the light of our fire (for the casements
admitted but a very feeble gleam), I sat down to the works of St.
Bruno; of all medleys the strangest. Allegories without end: a
theologico-natural history of birds, beasts, and fishes: several
chapters on paradise; the delights of solitude; the glory of Solomon's
temple; the new Jerusalem; and numberless other wonderful subjects,
full of enthusiasm and superstition.
Saint Bruno was certainly a mighty genius; I admire the motives which
drew him to this desert; but perhaps before we come to that part of the
story, you will like to know what preceded it. My Saint (for Bruno has
succeeded Thomas of Canterbury) was of noble descent, and possessed
considerable wealth. He was not less remarkable for the qualities of
his mind, and his talents gained him the degree of Master of the great
sciences in the University of Rheims; here he contracted a friendship
with Odo, afterwards Urban the Second. Being always poetic, singular,
and visionary, he soon grew disgusted with the world, and began early
in life to sigh after retirement. His residence at Grenoble, where he
was invited by Hugo, its bishop, determined him to the monastic state.
This venerable prelate imparted to him a vision in which he seemed to
behold the desert and mountain beyond his city visible in the dead of
night by the streaming of seven lucid stars that hung directly over
them. Whilst he was ardently gazing at this wonder, a still voice was
heard declaring it the future abode of Bruno—by him to be consecrated
as a retirement for holy men desirous of holding converse with their
God. No shepherd's pipe was to be heard within these precincts; no
huntsman's profane feet to tread these silent regions, which were to be
dedicated solely to their Creator; no woman was to ascend this
mountain, nor violate by her allurements the sacred repose of its
inhabitants.
Such were the first institutions of the order as the inspired Bishop
of Grenoble delivered them to Bruno, who selecting a few persons that,
like himself, contemned the splendours of the world and the charms of
society, repaired with them to this spot; and, in the darkest parts of
the forests which shade the most gloomy recesses of the mountains,
founded the first convent of Carthusians, long since destroyed.
Several years passed away, whilst Bruno was employed in actions of
the most exalted piety; and, the fame of his exemplary conduct reaching
Rome (where his friend had been lately invested with the papal tiara),
the whole conclave was desirous of seeing him, and entreated Urban to
invite him to Rome. The request of Christ's vicegerent was not to be
refused; and Bruno quitted his beloved solitude, leaving some of his
disciples behind, who propagated his doctrines, and tended zealously
the infant order.
The pomp of the Roman court soon disgusted the rigid Bruno, who had
weaned himself entirely from worldly affections.
Being wholly intent on futurity, the bustle and tumults of a busy
metropolis became so irksome that he supplicated Urban for leave to
retire; and, having obtained it, left Rome, and immediately seeking the
wilds of Calabria, there sequestered himself in a lonely hermitage,
calmly expecting his last moments. Many are the miracles which he
wrought and which his canonized bones have since effected: angels (it
is said), hovered round him in his departing hour, and bore him on
their wings to heaven. The different accounts of his translation are
almost endless; and as they are all nearly in the same style, it will
be needless to recite them.
I had scarcely finished taking extracts from the life and writings of
St. Bruno when the dinner appeared, consisting of everything most
delicate which a strict adherence to the rules of meagre could allow.
The good fathers returned as usual with the dessert, and served up an
admirable dish of miracles, well seasoned with the devil and prettily
garnished with angels and moonbeams.
{284}
Our conversation was interrupted, very agreeably, by the sudden
intrusion of the sun, which, escaping from the clouds, shone in full
splendour above the highest peak of the mountains, and the vapours
fleeting by degrees discovered the woods in all the freshness of their
verdure. The pleasure I received from seeing this new creation rising
to view was very lively, and, as the fathers assured me the humidity of
their walks did not often continue longer than the showers, I left my
hall.
Crossing the court, I hastened out of the gates, and running swiftly
along a winding path on the side of the meadow, bordered by the
forests, enjoyed the charms of the prospect, inhaled the perfume of the
woodlands, and now turning towards the summits of the precipices that
encircled this sacred inclosure, admired the glowing colours they
borrowed from the sun, contrasted by the dark hues of the forest. Now,
casting my eyes below, I suffered them to roam from valley to valley,
and from one stream (beset with tall pines and tufted beech trees) to
another. The purity of the air in these exalted regions, and the
lightness of my own spirits, almost seized me with the idea of treading
in that element.
Not content with the distant beauties of the hanging rocks and
falling waters, I still kept running wildly along, with an eagerness
and rapidity that, to a sober spectator, would have given me the
appearance of one possessed, and with reason, for I was affected with
the scene to a degree I despair of expressing.
Whilst I was continuing my course, pursued by a thousand strange
ideas, a father, who was returning from some distant hermitage, stopped
my career, and made signs for me to repose myself on a bench erected
under a neighbouring shed; and, perceiving my agitation and disordered
looks, fancied, I believe, that one of the bears that lurk near the
snows of the mountains had alarmed me by his sudden appearance.
The good old man, expressing by his gestures that he wished me to
recover myself in quiet on the bench, hastened, with as much alacrity
as his age permitted, to a cottage adjoining the shed, and returning in
a few moments, presented me some water in a wooden bowl, into which he
let fall several drops of an elixir composed of innumerable herbs, and
having performed this deed of charity, signified to me by a look, in
which benevolence, compassion, and perhaps some little remains of
curiosity were strongly painted, how sorry he was to be restrained by
his vow of silence from inquiring into the cause of my agitation, and
giving me farther assistance. I answered also by signs, on purpose to
carry on the adventure, and suffered him to depart with all his
conjectures unsatisfied.
No sooner had I lost sight of the benevolent hermit, than I started
up, and pursued my path with my former agility, till I came to the edge
of a woody dell, that divided the meadow on which I was running from
the opposite promontory. Here I paused, and looking up at the cliffs,
now but faintly illumined by the sun, which had been some time sinking
on our narrow horizon, reflected that it would be madness to bewilder
myself, at so late an hour, in the mazes of the forest. Being thus
determined, I abandoned with regret the idea of penetrating into the
lovely region before me, and contented myself for some moments with
marking the pale tints of the evening gradually overspreading the
cliffs, so lately flushed with the gleams of the setting sun.
But my eyes were soon diverted from contemplating these objects by a
red light streaming over the northern sky, which attracted my notice,
as I sat on the brow of a sloping hill, looking down a steep hollow
vale, surrounded by the forests, above which rose majestically the
varied peaks and promontories of the mountains.
The upland lawns, which hang at immense heights above the vale, next
caught my attention. I was gazing alternately at them and the valley,
when a long succession of light misty clouds, of strange fantastic
shapes, issuing from a narrow gully between the rocks, passed on, like
a solemn procession, over the hollow dale, midway between the stream
that watered it below and the summits of the cliffs on high.
The tranquillity of the region the verdure, of the lawn, environed by
girdles of flourishing wood, and the lowing of the distant herds,
filled me with the most pleasing sensations. But when I lifted up my
eyes to the towering cliffs, and beheld the northern sky streaming with
ruddy light, and the long succession of misty forms hovering over the
space beneath, they became sublime and awful. The dews which began to
descend, and the vapours which were rising from every dell, reminded me
of the lateness of the hour; and it was with great reluctance that I
turned from the scene which had so long engaged my contemplation, and
traversed slowly and silently the solitary meadows, over which I had
hurried with such eagerness an hour ago.
Hill appeared after hill, and hillock succeeded hillock, which I had
passed unnoticed before. Sometimes I imagined myself following a
different path from that which had brought me to the edge of the deep
valley; another moment, descending into the hollows between the
hillocks that concealed the distant prospects from my sight, I fancied
I had entirely mistaken my route, and expected every moment to be lost
amongst the rude brakes and tangled thickets that skirted the eminences
around.
As the darkness increased, my situation became still more and more
forlorn. I had almost abandoned the idea of reaching the convent; and
whenever I gained any swelling ground, looked above, below, and on
every side of me, in hopes of discovering some glimmering lamp which
might indicate a hermitage, whose charitable possessor, I flattered
myself, would direct me to the monastery.
At length, after a tedious wandering along the hills, I found myself,
unexpectedly, under the convent walls; and, as I was looking for the
gate, the attendant lay brothers came out with lights, in order to
search for me. Scarcely had I joined them when the Coadjutor and the
Secretary came forward, with the kindest anxiety expressed their
uneasiness at my long absence, and conducted me to my apartment, where
Mr. —- was waiting, with no small degree of impatience; but I found
not a word had been mentioned of my adventure with the hermit; so that,
I believe, he strictly kept his vow till the day when the Carthusians
are allowed to speak, and which happened after my departure.
We had hardly supped before the gates of the convent were shut, a
circumstance which disconcerted me not a little, as the full moon
gleamed through the casements, and the stars, sparkling above the
forests of pines, invited me to leave my apartment again, and to give
myself up entirely to the spectacle they offered.
The Coadjutor, perceiving that I was often looking earnestly through
the windows, guessed my wishes, and calling a lay brother, ordered him
to open the gates, and wait at them till my return. It was not long
before I took advantage of this permission, and escaping from the
courts and cloisters of the monastery, all hushed in death-like
stillness, ascended a green knoll, which several ancient pines strongly
marked with their shadows: there, leaning against one of their trunks,
I lifted up my eyes to the awful barrier of surrounding mountains,
discovered by the trembling silver light of the moon shooting directly
on the woods which fringed their acclivities.
The lawns, the vast woods, the steep descents, the precipices, the
torrents, lay all extended beneath, softened by a pale bluish haze,
that alleviated, in some measure, the stern prospect of the rocky
promontories above, wrapped in dark shadows. The sky was of the
deepest azure; innumerable stars were distinguished with unusual
clearness from this elevation, many of which twinkled behind the
fir-trees edging the promontories. White, grey, and darkish clouds
came marching towards the moon, that shone full against a range of
cliffs, which lift themselves far above the others. The hoarse murmur
of the torrent, throwing itself from the distant wildernesses into the
gloomy vales, was mingled with the blast that blew from the mountains.
It increased. The forests began to wave, black clouds rose from the
north, and, as they fleeted along, approached the moon, whose light
they shortly extinguished. A moment of darkness succeeded; the gust
was chill and melancholy; it swept along the desert, and then
subsiding, the vapours began to pass away, and the moon returned the
grandeur of the scene was renewed, and its imposing solemnity was
increased by her presence. Inspiration was in every wind.
I followed some impulse which drove me to the summit of the mountains
before me; and there, casting a look on the whole extent of wild woods
and romantic precipices, thought of the days of St. Bruno. I eagerly
contemplated every rock that formerly might have met his eyes; drank of
the spring which tradition says he was wont to drink of; and ran to
every pine whose withered appearance bespoke a remote antiquity, and
beneath which, perhaps, the saint had reposed himself, when worn with
vigils, or possessed with the sacred spirit of his institutions.
It was midnight: the convent bell tolled; for the most solemn hour of
prayer was arrived. I cannot, nor would I, attempt to unfold to you,
in prose, half the strange things of which I thought, and which I
seemed to see, during this wild excursion. However, I owe to it the
poetical humour in which I composed the following lines, written
immediately on my return, in the album of the fathers, during the
stillest watch of the night:
ODE.
To orisons, the midnight bell
Had toll'd each silent inmate from his cell;
The hour was come to muse or pray,
Or work mysterious rites that shun the day:
My steps some whis'pring influence led,
Up to yon pine-clad mountain's gloomy head:
Hollow and deep the gust did blow,
And torrents dash'd into the vales below.
At length the toilsome height attain'd,
Quick fled the moon, and sudden stillness reign'd.
As fearful turn'd my searching eye,
Glanc'd near a shadowy form, and fleeted by;
Anon, before me full it stood:
A saintly figure, pale, in pensive mood.
Damp horror thrill'd me till he spoke,
And accents faint the charm bound silence broke:
“Long, trav'ller! ere this region near,
Say, did not whisp'rings strange arrest thine ear?
My summons 'twas to bid thee come,
Where sole the friend of Nature loves to roam.
Ages long past, this drear abode
To solitude I sanctified, and God:
'Twas here, by love of Wisdom brought,
Her truest lore, Self-knowledge, first I sought;
Devoted here my worldly wealth,
To win my chosen sons immortal health.
Midst these dun woods, and mountains steep,
Midst the wild horrors of yon desert deep,
Midst yawning caverns, wat'ry dells,
Midst long, sequestered aisles, and peaceful cells,
No passions fell distract the mind,
To Nature, Silence, and Herself consign'd.
In these still mansions who shall bide,
'Tis mine, with Heaven's appointment, to decide;
But, hither, I invite not all:
Some want the will to come, and more the call;
But all, mark well my parting voice!
Led, or by chance, necessity, or choice
(Ah! with our Genius dread to sport),
Sage lessons here may learn of high import.
Know! Silence is the nurse of Truth;
Know! Temperance long retards the flight of Youth
Learn here, how penitence and pray'r
Man's fallen race for happier worlds prepare;
Learn mild demeanour, void of art,
And bear, amidst the world, the hermit's heart;
Fix, trav'ller! deep this heaven-taught lore:
Know Bruno brings it, and returns no more.”
(Half sighed, half smiled his long farewell),
He turn'd, and vanish'd in the bright'ning dell.
My imagination was too much disturbed, and my spirits far too active,
to allow me any rest for some time, and I had not long been quieted by
sleep, when I was suddenly awakened by a furious blast, that drove open
my casement, and let in the roar of the tempest, for the night was
troubled. In the intervals of the storm, in those moments when the
winds seemed to pause, the faint sounds of the choir stole upon my ear;
but were swallowed up the next instant by the redoubled fury of the
gust, which was still increased by the roar of the waters.
I started from my bed, closed the casement, and composed myself as
well as I was able; but no sooner had the sunbeams entered my window,
than I arose, and gladly leaving my cell, hastened to the same knoll
where I had stood the night before. The storm was dissipated, and the
pure morning air delightfully refreshing; every tree, every shrub,
glistened with dew. A gentle wind breathed upon the woods, and waved
the fir-trees on the cliffs, which, free from clouds, rose distinctly
into the clear blue sky. I strayed from the knoll into the valley
between the steeps of wood and the turrets of the convent, and passed
the different buildings, destined for the manufacture of the articles
necessary to the fathers; for nothing is worn or used within this
inclosure which comes from the profane world.
Traversing the meadows and a succession of little dells, where I was
so lately bewildered, I came to a bridge thrown over the torrent, which
I crossed; and here followed a slight path that brought me to an
eminence, covered with a hanging wood of beach-trees feathered to the
ground, from whence I looked down the narrow pass towards Grenoble.
Perceiving a smoke to arise from the groves which nodded over the
eminence, I climbed up a rocky steep, and, after struggling through a
thicket of shrubs, entered a smooth, sloping lawn, framed in by woody
precipices; at one extremity of which I discovered the cottage, whose
smoke had directed me to this sequestered spot; and, at the other, a
numerous group of cattle, lying under the shade of some beech-trees,
whilst several friars, with long beards and russet garments, were
employed in milking them.
The luxuriant foliage of the woods, clinging round the steeps that
skirted the lawn; its gay, sunny exposition; the groups of sleek,
dappled cows, and the odd employment of the friars, so little consonant
with their venerable beards, formed a picturesque and certainly very
singular spectacle. I, who had been accustomed to behold “milk-maids
singing blithe,” and tripping lightly along with their pails, was not a
little surprised at the silent gravity with which these figures shifted
their trivets from cow to cow; and it was curious to see with what
adroitness they performed their functions, managing their long beards
with a facility and cleanliness equally admirable.
I watched all their movements for some time, concealed by the trees,
before I made myself visible; but no sooner did I appear on the lawn,
than one of the friars quitted his trivet, very methodically set down
his pail, and coming towards me with an open, smiling countenance,
desired me to refresh myself with some bread and milk. A second,
observing what was going forward, was resolved not to be exceeded in an
hospitable act, and, quitting his pail too, hastened into the woods
whence he returned in a few minutes with some strawberries, very neatly
enveloped in fresh leaves. These hospitable, milking fathers, next
invited me to the cottage, whither I declined going, as I preferred the
shade of the beeches; so, throwing myself on the dry aromatic herbage,
I enjoyed the pastoral character of the scene with all possible glee.
Not a cloud darkened the heavens; every object smiled; innumerable
gaudy flies glanced in the sunbeams that played in a clear spring by
the cottage; I saw with pleasure the sultry glow of the distant cliffs
and forests, whilst indolently reclined in the shade, listening to the
summer hum; one hour passed after another neglected away, during my
repose in this most delightful of valleys. The cattle were all slunk
into the recesses of the wood, and were drinking at the streams which
flow along their shades, before I could prevail on myself to quit the
turf and the beech trees. Never shall I cease regretting the peaceful
moments I spent in Valombré, as never perhaps, were I even to return to
it, may so many circumstances unite to render it pleasing.
When I returned unwillingly to the convent, the only topic on which I
could converse was the charms of Valombré; but notwithstanding the
indifference with which I now regarded the prospects that surrounded
the monastery, I could not disdain an offer made by one of the friars,
of conducting me to the summit of the highest peak in the desert.
Pretty late in the afternoon I set out with my guide, and, following
his steps through many forests of pine, and wild apertures among them,
strewed with fragments, arrived at a chapel, built on a mossy rock, and
dedicated to St. Bruno.
Having once more drunk of the spring that issues from the rock on
which this edifice is raised, I moved forward, keeping my eyes fixed on
a lofty green mountain, whence rises a vast cliff, spiring up to a
surprising elevation; and which (owing to the sun's reflection on a
transparent mist hovering around it) was tinged with a pale visionary
light. This object was the goal to which I aspired; and redoubling my
activity, I made the best of my way over rude ledges of rocks, and
crumbled fragments of the mountain interspersed with firs, till I came
to the green steeps I had surveyed at a distance.
These I ascended with some difficulty, and, leaving a few scattered
beech-trees behind, in full leaf, shortly bid adieu to summer, and
entered the regions of spring; for, as I approached that part of the
mountain next the summit, the trees, which I found there rooted in the
crevices, were but just beginning to unfold their leaves, and every
spot of the greensward was covered with cowslips and violets.
After taking a few moments' repose, my guide prepared to clamber
amongst the rocks, and I followed him with as much alertness as I was
able, till laying hold of the trunk of a withered pine, we sprang upon
a small level space, where I seated myself, and beheld far beneath me
the vast desert and dreary solitudes, amongst which appeared, thinly
scattered, the green meadows and hanging lawns. The eye next
overlooking the barrier of mountains, ranged through immense tracts of
distant countries; the plains where Lyons is situated; the woodlands
and lakes of Savoy; amongst which that of Bourget was near enough to
discover its beauties, all glowing with the warm haze of the setting
sun.
My situation was too dizzy to allow a long survey; so turning my eyes
from the terrific precipice, I gladly beheld an opening in the rocks,
through which we passed into a little irregular glen of the smoothest
greensward, closed in on one side by the great peak, and on the others
by a ridge of sharp pinnacles, which crown the range of white cliffs I
had so much admired the night before, when brightened by the moon.
The singular situation of this romantic spot invited me to remain in
it till the sun was about to sink on the horizon: during which time I
visited every little cave delved in the ridges of rock, and gathered
large sprigs of the mezereon and rhododendron in full bloom, which,
with a surprising variety of other plants, carpeted this lovely glen.
A luxuriant vegetation,
“That on the green turf suck'd the honey'd showers,
And purpled all the ground with vernal flow'rs.”
My guide, perceiving I was ready to mount still higher, told me it
would be in vain, as the beds of snow that lie eternally in some
fissures of the mountain, must necessarily impede my progress; but,
finding I was very unwilling to abandon the enterprise, he showed me a
few notches in the peak, by which we might ascend, though not without
danger. This prospect rather abated my courage, and the wind rising,
drove several thick clouds round the bottom of the peak, which
increasing every minute, shortly screened the green mountain and all
the forest from our sight. A sea of vapours soon undulated beneath my
feet, and lightning began to flash from a dark angry cloud, that hung
over the valleys, and deluged them with storms, whilst I was securely
standing under the clear expanse of ether.
But the hour did not admit of my remaining long in this proud
station; so descending, I was soon obliged to pass through the vapours,
and, carefully following my guide (for a false step might have caused
my destruction), wound amongst the declivities, till we left the peak
behind, and just as we reached the green mountain, which was moistened
with the late storm, the clouds fleeted and the evening recovered its
serenity.
Leaving the chapel of St. Bruno on the right, we entered the woods,
and soon emerged from them into a large pasture, under the grand
amphitheatre of mountains, having a gentle ascent before us, beyond
which appeared the neat blue roofs and glittering spires of the
convent, where we arrived as the moon was beginning to assume her
empire.
I need not say I rested well after the interesting fatigues of the
day. The next morning, early, I quitted my kind hosts with great
reluctance. The Coadjutor and two other fathers accompanied me to the
outward gate, and there within the solemn circle of the desert bestowed
on me their benediction.
It seemed indeed to come from their hearts, nor would they leave me
till I was a hundred paces from the convent; and then, laying their
hands on their breasts, declared that if ever I was disgusted with the
world, here was an asylum.
I was in a melancholy mood when I traced back all the windings of my
road, and when I found myself beyond the last gate, in the midst of the
wide world again, it increased.
We returned to Les Echelles; from thence to Chamberry, and, instead
of going through Aix, passed by Amecy; but nothing in all the route
engaged my attention, nor had I any pleasing sensations till I beheld
the glassy lake of Geneva, and its lovely environs.
I rejoiced then because I knew of a retirement on its banks where I
could sit and think of Valombré.
Footnotes:
{110} Hills in
the neighbourhood of Quang-Tong
{127} The
Peries, inhabitants of Ginnistan, live upon perfumes, etc., etc. See
Richardson's Dissertations.
{133} Thisbe, a
favourite greyhound torn to pieces by a mad dog.
{140} See the
description of the Grande Chartreuse.
{156} The
conduct of the emperor, since the death of his mother, seems to be
accomplishing this prediction apace.
{170a} It is
reasonably conjectured that the sea formerly washed the walls of Padua.
{170b} T.
Livius, L. i., c. i.
{170c} Lib.
v., c. iv., p. 5.
{171} Called
Roscani in Venetian, and reduced to ashes for the glass manufactory at
Murano.
{182} A nephew
of Bertoni, and worthy of his uncle.
{214} Mentioned
by Dante in his “Purgatorio.”
{240} Mem. pour
la Vie de Petrarque, vol. i., p. 439.
{284} Angela
are frequently represented, in legendary tales, as riding on the beams
of the moon.
|